#anyway (sorry so many anyways) i hope you liked this. it will probably never happen again
Explore tagged Tumblr posts
Text
Ok for some reason my brain is hyper focusing on Johnlock again like I won't regret it 2-3 business days from now when I come out of it with 5 new open AO3 tabs (out of my already 156 open AO3 tabs not counting other unfinished/unread fic/fic I've not caught up on, full disclosure) for fic that I probably won't finish reading and/or while being unable to find the. Very Specific. fic I want to read and just having like an open half-filtered tab... But Anyway.
Here's a Very Rare Johnlock Post from me lol
Imagine after all the seasons are over and Johnlock are old and have finally talked about their feelings and properly, actually, gotten officially together
(and subsequently gotten married in like 2 months cause Sherlock filled out the paperwork while John was not actually at home and then actually having a discussion about it when John finds out it happened cause Sherlock casually mentions it and actually agrees after Sherlock mentions (read: steamrolls over him, anxiously) them practically already being married by common law and just officialising it for the tax benefits... they only have a proper wedding, maybe on their/an anniversary when Mrs Hudson finds out probably 6 months later or sth and complains,, but I've gone on a tangent again)
Anyway Rosie is a teenager, with after-school activities and a phone.
I'm just imagining Sherlock dragging John out on a murder case (read: date) and deciding to feed him midway through (like always, tbh,, sth sth that post about feeding the depressed man that tends to forget to eat but I digress)
So Rosie gets a text and a voicemail from the two of them (cause Sherlock prefers to text and tell me John is not the sort to leave voicemails, like he would have put it on the voicemail machine if they had one he's so old man sometimes)
And it goes something like:
[Text from Papa]
RagĂš Bolognese, Angelo's, 7pm. Hugs. -SH
[Voicemail from Dad]
"Hi honey, it's Dad.
Sorry we won't be able to make it to dinner with you, your father's got a case and you know how he gets...
Anyway, Mrs Hudson is going out tonight remember, so your Papa is booking the usual table at Angelo's for you... You still like the Spaghetti Bolognese right?
Don't worry about us, we'll eat before we get home. And the reservation is at 7, so don't be late. This will probably take a while so don't wait up either and go straight to bed young lady, you hear me?
Anyway I've got to go, loveyoubye."
Anyway I think it would be very cute, like they love and care about her, even if they're old men who laugh at crime scenes and whose ideal date is trying to catch a murderer together, and they show it by taking a moment to make sure she's fed with her favorite food even when they're busy solving crime, so yeah.
#i know sherlock is not the type to message âhugsâ and stuff that often but i feel like he would do it for Rosie#cause he's enamored like look at the way he looked at hee in the show#that's his baby#and john somehow manages to be the worried mother and the stern father in one conversation#he has a lot of practice tbf#i think i used anyway too much sorry#i also kept going on tangents i might need an adhd diagnosis my brain is so scattered sometimes but i think it's also hereditary#ANYWAY I'M OVER SHARING#shut up wonder omg they don't need to know everything lol#anyway (sorry so many anyways) i hope you liked this. it will probably never happen again#I'll stop writing random tags now#johnlock#sherlock holmes#bbc sherlock#john watson#bbc john watson#bbc johnlock#rosie watson#post season 3#teenage rosie watson#Angelo's mentioned#texts#voicemail#gave up on formatting btw
61 notes
¡
View notes
Text
Like he means it

Pairing: Roommate!Bucky x Reader
Summary: You canât take another night of hearing Bucky fuck a girl who isnât you.
Word Count: 13.6k
Warnings: Bucky is a fuckboy (but heâs still a sweetheart); lots of talk about unrequited love (but is it?); mentions of sex; crying; lots of desperation; longing; heavy confessions; feels; happy ending
Authorâs Note: This is written for the lovely cinema themed writing challenge of @elixirfromthestars ⥠I had this kind of idea for a while but when I read those lyrics it somehow immediately came back to my mind and I needed to make something out of it. This is kind of inspired by your Boulevard Confessions because I loved it so much! And damn, I've already written so much about roommate!Bucky but I canât help myself lol, I love him. Also, this got a little long, I'm sorry. Still, I hope you enjoy! âĄ
Hold My Hand "Pull me close, wrap me in your aching arms. I see that you're hurtin', why'd you take so long to tell me you need me? I see that you're bleeding, you don't need to show me again. But if you decide to, I'll ride in this life with you. I won't let go 'til the end." â Lady Gaga
Masterlist

You hear the giggling before anything else.
Itâs always the giggling.
And, as always, it grates on your nerves.
It carves through the air, seeps into the walls, into the floorboards, into you. It tears its way inside and scrapes its manicured nails along the rawest and most sensitive parts of you, only to bury itself deep, where you canât simply dig it out.
Then comes the keys.
The light, metallic jingle, so careless in its melody, but so troubling in its meaning.
Then the lock turning, the click soft and yet so irrefutable.
Then the door opening.
More giggles.
His breathy chuckles.
Then the door closing.
Shoes being kicked off, one hitting the wall.
You press the pillow harder against your ears, as if you could suffocate the sound before it reaches you, as if you could bury yourself deep enough under the covers to escape what you already know is coming. But you canât. You never can.
Your brain usually does you the favors of drowning out the parts in the hallway, knowing it will probably make your heart stop in an instant. Today, it doesnât do you any favors and you close your eyes, accepting the sting behind them.
And then, his bedroom door.
And if all that wasnât torture enough, it was only the easy part.
Because now is when it really starts. Itâs when your throat closes up, the breath in your lungs turns heavy, thick, impossible. Because no matter how many times this has happened, no matter how many times you laid here in your bed, still, so still, waiting for the agony to stop, pretending it doesnât happen - it never stops hurting. It never stops breaking your heart - or whateverâs left of it.
At first, there is silence. The small period where you almost dare to believe, to hope.
But then comes the moaning.
High-pitched and breathy, hinting at a pleasure that strikes you with a hammer.
Someone else. Always someone else. Someone who is not you, someone who never had to try, someone who will never know what it means to ache for him like you do.
Then, quieter, but just as devastating, Buckyâs voice. The low sound of him unraveling. The sound of something slipping from him that you will never be able to take.
And thatâs what breaks you most. Thatâs what turns the ache into utter misery. Madness even. Itâs the inescapable proof that he has something to give - something deep, something intimate - and he is giving it away. Over and over again, but never to you.
You close your eyes, as always. It doesnât help, as always. The sounds donât stop anyway. The images come anyway - the touches you have imagined, the way his hands would feel against your skin, the way his mouth would shape your name if you were the one beneath him. The way he might look at you, if only he could see.
But right now, you are just the ghost in the next room, curled in on yourself, ears filled with the sound of someone else living the life you always wanted.
And in the morning, or right after, when the door will open again, when the giggling will turn to goodbyes, you will still be here, where you always are. Where you always will be. Waiting. Wanting. Breaking. Wishing you could turn it off, this feeling. This unendurable and never-ending heartbreak.
And that finally makes the tears flow.
They well up before they spill over, down the slope of your cheek, gathering in the hollow beneath your nose before falling onto the pillow and wetting it like a pool.
You squeeze your eyes shut, so tightly it should hurt, so tightly it should make them stop. But they come anyway. They come despite the barricade of your willpower, despite the way your body coils tighter in on itself. They come despite the desperate war you wage against them.
They come because you have lost. Because itâs too much.
The moaning doesnât stop, and itâs too much. Itâs the middle of the night, and itâs too much. Itâs the third night in a row, and itâs too much.
Buckyâs hushed voice shatters something inside of you, you didnât know was left intact a few seconds ago.
Your breath turns sticky, only half of it making its way up your throat. The other half stays attached to the walls of your throat like honey gone rancid. It refuses to leave completely, snagging and trapping you in the awful space between breathing and choking.
Maybe if it stopped altogether, it would be easier. Maybe suffocating would be gentler than this slow and unsparing death of heartbreak.
Your hands are shaking. You bury your face into the pillow, willing it to just take you as a whole and never let you leave again. The fabric muffles the shuddering sobs, but it cannot do anything for the way your body trembles. But you know that the sounds of pleasure in the other room will tune out the sounds of your cries. The pillow is being clutched so tightly, you might tear the fabric. But itâs your heart thatâs being torn into so many pieces. So what is a pillow compared to the ruin of your heart? Itâs nothing.
You are alone in your grief.
The moans stop for a second - abrupt, cut off mid-breath.
Buckyâs voice comes. He says something but you donât catch his words.
However, you do catch the displeased groan of his girl for the night. Drawn-out and petulant. Annoyed.
Bucky speaks again. Firmer, this time. Again, itâs too quiet to catch it.
And then you hear your name. Itâs muffled still, but you would hear your name coming from his lips always and forever. You know the exact cadence of it shaping his mouth.
Everything in you halts. Your breaths are suspended somewhere in your throat, caught between shock and devastation.
The girl scoffs. Itâs a snappy sound. Almost whiny. You would have rolled your eyes if you werenât so troubled.
The moaning resumes. But it is quieter this time. Controlled almost. A courtesy. A mercy. But not for you. Not in the way you wish.
And it makes you know.
He asked her to keep it down. For you. He must have told her he has a roommate - you - and that they need to be mindful, that you might be trying to sleep.
Somehow, in all the infinite ways he could have cared for you, this is the one he chose. Not to love you, not to want you, but to make sure his flings donât disrupt your sleep. As if thatâs the worst of it. As if the noise is what truly keeps you up at night, and not the agonizing truth of it all.
Harshly, your teeth sink into your lip, fighting to stifle the sob that trembles on the edge of you. But again, you are losing.
Because hearing your name in the middle of something so intimate, spoken in the same breath of his pleasure, is pure anguish.
Because your name should not exist there. Not like this. Not casually sneaking into a mind occupied with pleasuring someone else.
If he were to say your name in a moment like this, it should be a soft whisper against your skin, entangled in sheets, buried in kisses that steal the air from your lungs. It should be something private, something sacred.
Not an idle afterthought. A consideration. A passing thought before he loses himself in someone elseâs body. You have never heard him say any girlâs name before when sleeping with them, but hell you also donât try to listen too closely.
You wonât talk about this. You never talk about this. When the morning comes and you meet Bucky in the kitchen for breakfast, you will not mention it. Just like you never mention the other nights. Just like you never dwell on the soft apologies he offers when they got too loud. And just like always, you will brush it off, force a brittle smile, and tell him that itâs fine.
Itâs not. It never has been. And you donât think you ever manage to make it sound like you mean it. But you are gone before Bucky can push or apologize again. Or see how deep the knife has gone.
Because he might be careful to be quiet. But he will never be careful enough to stop breaking your heart.
So what is the point?
You donât want to do another morning like this.
You canât do another morning like this.
Not three times in a row.
Not when the night has already taken your soul and what was precious of it, barely sewn together by the time the sun fights its way through the window.
Not when you know how it will play out. Like it has the day before. And the day before that.
The door to his room will creak open, the girl already gone. You will hear the shuffle of his bare feet against the floor, the sigh as he stretches, and the yawn that usually makes it past his lips. He never tries to stifle it.
And then, him standing there and watching you.
Disheveled. Bed hair sticking up in a mess. You never let your mind wander to how her fingers might have something to do with that. His shirt would loosely hang over his frame, probably thrown on in a hurry, collar askew, revealing a sliver of skin you shouldnât be looking at.
That lazy and slightly flustered smile. Sleep still in the corners of his eyes, his lips, his voice, when he greets you with a scratchy morning.
Like nothing happened. Like he didnât shatter you into a thousand unfixable pieces last night. And the night before that. And now this night.
You will do your best to greet him back without sounding pained. Focusing on making coffee. The way the steam normally curls into the air, the warmth of the mug in your hands. You will have to focus on it as if itâs the only thing keeping you upright.
And despite knowing you shouldnât - despite hating yourself for it - you will slide a cup toward him. As you always do.
His smile would shift. Settling into something fond, something warm, something that digs its claws into your ribs and refuses to let go.
Because thatâs usually the worst part. Heâs always so sweet with you. Thoughtful, affectionate in ways that donât count. In the ways that make you feel like maybe if you just hold on a little longer, if you wait just a little more, he might start feeling what you do.
But you are certain, he wonât.
Because for him, everything seems fine. For him, this will be just another morning. Another easy, comfortable start to the day. With his eyes on you and sipping his coffee, exhaling like he is finally at peace, and leaning against the counter with a lightness that always has your stomach all up in shambles.
He always makes it seem so normal. Starting conversation with you, talking to you as if nothing has changed. Like you didnât spend the night curled in on yourself, swallowing down sobs so thick they feel like razor blades. Like you didnât spend the night choking on the sound of him with her.
He never mentions them. Never says any of the girlâs names, not that you even know what they are. He never makes plans to see them again. Just another faceless but very loud girl. One to be forgotten.
But tomorrow night, there will be another.
Tomorrow night will be the same.
And in the morning nothing will have happened.
Only him standing there with his sleep-mussed hair and that sweet, easy smile, drinking the coffee you should have stopped making for him a long, long time ago.
You rise out of bed, not even aware of it. The cold air nips at your tear-streaked cheeks, your sheets thrown back in a mass of tangled fabric still warm from the ball your body was curled in, breaking in silence. The pillow is still wet.
Your hands move on their own, tugging on slacks, yanking a hoodie over your head as though the fabric could hide you, save you from the devastation caving a hole into your chest.
You fumble for your phone before throwing open your bedroom door.
The moans are louder again. Yanking at your resolve and laughing at the way your tears keep coming.
Your feet move faster. You donât actually run, but it feels like running. Like fleeing. Escaping a burning building before it collapses. The living room comes into view and itâs like a cruel trick, like the universe is taunting you, because all you see are phantoms.
The coffee machine on the counter. How many times have you two stood there, still tousled with sleep, you making coffee for the both of you because Bucky burns everything. How many times did he lean on the counter, watching you with that stupid little half-smirk, pretending to judge your process but always humming in satisfaction when he took the first sip.
The bookshelf in the corner - the one you swore you could build on your own. And you tried, you really did, but the second the screwdriver slipped and you gasped out loud, Bucky was there immediately. Hands on yours, worry furrowing his brows, grumbling about your stubbornness and continuing to grumble when he passive-aggressively built it himself.
You sat cross-legged on the floor, watching him, pretending to be annoyed but secretly savoring the way he kept glancing at you, again and again, to make sure you were okay and giving you instructions as to how itâs done but throwing you a glare when you insisted on trying again.
The carpet. The same one you both collapsed onto after a night out with your friends, too tipsy to move, giggling like teenagers as you pointed at the ceiling, pretending to find constellations in the uneven paint. He named one after you. You named one after him. You fell asleep there, side by side, and when you woke up he was so close. So close.
The couch. The one he practically melted into last week when he had a fever, whining dramatically until you caved and brought him soup. He kept pulling you back when you tried to leave, pouting like a child, demanding your attention because Iâm sick, doll. Canât ignore me when Iâm sick. Until you sighed and sat down, letting his head rest in your lap. He fell asleep like that. Snoring. And you didnât have the heart to move.
And now he is in his room, tangled in her, moaning into her skin, kissing her - like it doesnât mean anything. Like none of it ever meant anything.
Your breath is uneven, your hands shaking as you grab your shoes. The laces blur, your vision fogs, but you canât stop.
You throw open the door to your shared apartment, barely thinking, barely breathing, only moving. It swings back into the frame with a sharp sound echoing through the hallway, louder than you had intended. But it doesnât matter now. Because you are sure that Bucky doesnât hear it. He doesnât notice. He is otherwise occupied and you are utterly drained of thinking about with what.
The air outside the apartment feels different. Lighter and cooler, but it doesnât bring relief. Itâs thin and hard to pull into your lungs properly.
Natashaâs place isnât far. Fifteen minutes on foot. You tell yourself that over and over, like a mantra, like something to grasp on.
No more moans. Lost to silence, left in a place that feels little like home right now. Still, they resonate in your skull, haunting reminders of that pain you canât dismiss, that hurt that hangs off you like a heavy burden.
You slow your steps on the staircase and inhale deeply. It trembles on its way out.
You hate how fragile you feel. How breakable. Hate how much this affects you. How much he affects you.
But you keep walking.
Just yesterday, you talked to Natasha and she offered you to stay with her for the night, looking at you all sharp and knowing, but in her own way sympathetic. You declined. Because you thought youâd be fine. Well, you were wrong.
Itâs past midnight now, completely dark, but you donât care.
You know, Natasha will let you in. And that will have to be enough for tonight.
The city is alive even at this hour. Neon lights glow in the distance, their reflection shimmering in rain-slicked puddles that dot the cracked pavement. Somewhere across the street, there is a group of people laughing, and disappearing around a corner. A car flies past, with headlights unlocking long shadows lengthening down the sidewalk.
You focus on those things. On the shoes thumping against the pavement. The way the crisp air is somehow refreshing as it weaves through the fabric of your hoodie and stings slightly at the tear-streaked skin of your cheeks, keeping you awake and propelling you forward. Not that you need any more motivation to leave.
You wind your arms around yourself like a shield, like a last-ditch effort to keep yourself from falling apart completely.
You donât look back.
Somewhere above you, there is a creak of a window opening.
It makes you freeze for a small second, before tightening your arms around yourself and picking up your pace.
Your stomach spins violently because fuck, you know that sound. You know the groan of that window when it moves, just a little off its hinges, just enough to make a noise youâve heard a hundred times before. Because itâs the window of your apartment. And it makes a noise that has never felt so much like a punch to the gut.
âY/n?â
You close your eyes.
âY/n!â
Your name spills from his lips, laced with confusion, infused with something that makes your fingers clench around your arms.
You could ignore him. You should ignore him. Just keep walking, keep moving, pretend you didnât hear.
But you canât. You never can.
With a slow, dragging breath, you turn around.
Bucky is leaning over the frame, his torso reaching out the window, bare from the shoulders down. He is bathed in the hazy yellow glow of the streetlights.
His hair is messed up, brown tendrils all sticking in different directions. His brows are knitted in confusion. His lips in a frown so full of worry. And itâs just too much.
Too warm. Too intimate. Too familiar.
Your chest stutters, lurches, and swirls itself into a dozen moving shapes that hurt more than they should. Because he stands there shirtless. Shirtless. And you know why.
You swallow back your hurt, but it stays stuck in your throat and crawls right up again to make you taste it on your tongue.
You force your gaze away from staring at the curve of his collarbone, the slope of his throat, the soft lines of his skin, the hard lines of his muscles that she had her hands on just minutes ago.
âWhere are you going?â
The tone highlights his concern, thick with the kind of worry that would have meant everything if it werenât coming from him like this, not now. His voice is rough, remnants of the time already spent with that girl, but all you can hear is that damn worry in it.
As if you owe him an answer. As if he isnât the reason your chest feels like itâs been hollowed out and left to rot.
You draw in half a breath and look away - down the street, down at your shoes, the bricks of your building. Anywhere that isnât him.
âTo Natâs.â
Itâs clipped and short. You donât want to explain, donât want to talk, donât want to stand here in the night air beneath the window of the apartment you share with him like some pathetic wreck while he worries about you.
âNatâs?â You can hear the bewilderment in his voice, the way he is trying to piece it together, the way his brain is already working overtime, scrambling to make sense of this - and you can practically feel the moment he decides he wonât let it go.
âSomethinâ happen?â His voice just wonât stop to be so perplexed, so concerned. It is softer now, but you only glance up at him briefly before averting your eyes again.
Because damn Bucky, yes, something happened. Everything happened. Every night that he brings someone home, every touch that belongs to someone else, every soft moan that isnât meant for you.
All these moments, all these memories, every feeling left unsaid that swivels and stings and grows into what it is now - a storm inside your rib cage, a hurricane of almosts and never wills and why does it have to be like this?
But of course, you canât say that. You wonât say that.
So you just shake your head, tighten your arms around yourself, and take a step back.
âGo back to bed, Bucky.â
Because you canât do this right now. You wonât do this right now.
Not when you are already about to break.
âI- What?â
His voice is a little raspy, puzzled, and under any other circumstance, it might have been endearing. On a normal day, if this were some cozy Sunday morning and not the breaking stretch of midnight, you might have smiled at the sight of him like this - hair in a wild mess, eyes a little heavy from the day, bare shoulders shifting in the glow of the streets.
But this is not a Sunday morning. And nothing about this feels good or cozy or right.
You are so damn exhausted. So damn drained.
âYou-â he starts again, brow furrowing deeper, but before he can get another word out, hands appear - slim fingers wrapping around the thick of his bicep, tugging, pulling, trying to drag him back inside.
Bile is pooling at the base of your throat.
Sheâs alone with him up there, in the space that you have spent so much time making into something warm, something filled with comfort. A space where you feel home. With him. And yet, itâs that random girl in there, laying in his bed, under his covers, in his scent, in him.
âBucky, come on.â Her voice is thin and peevish, thick with impatience. And exhaustion you believe she has no right to feel when you are the one who has spent the time suffocating under her presence.
But Bucky doesnât move.
His hand only grips onto the windowsill tighter, muscles in his arm locking.
And his eyes stay fixed on you.
Still searching. Still confused. Still trying to understand.
And it makes your hands clammy.
The way he looks at you like he is reaching for something just beyond his grasp, something that eludes him no matter how hard he tries to hold onto it.
He huffs out a breath that just borders on frustration when her fingers wonât stop pulling at him.
âHold on, doll-â he calls out to you and unwinds her hands from his arm, barely sparing her a glance as he leans out the window again. There is a little something in his tone when he speaks to you again. Something like exasperation. But itâs not meant for you. âWhatâre you doinâ at Natâs? Tell her itâs the middle of the goddamn night. Why would she let you walk over to her? She knows itâs not safe.â
You shake your head, already half turning away again. You just cannot do this right now.
âItâs fine. Just go back to bed, Bucky.â
âY/n - hey. Whatâs wrong? Whatâs this about?â There it is. That softness in his voice. That concern. And it hurts. Because he doesnât get it.
âGo. Back. To bed,â you repeat, sharper now, gritting it out between clenched teeth.
But Bucky has always been stubborn. And so infuriating. Itâs like he doesnât hear you at all.
âCâmon doll, did something happen? Talk to me,â he urges, voice gentle but he doesnât seem to like the way you look as if you would bolt around the corner any second. His tone is coaxing in a way that makes you ache because this is what he does. This is what he has always done - pulling you in, making you feel safe, making you feel cared for, making you feel like you matter. Like he means it.
And itâs cruel. So cruel.
Because you are in love with him.
And he is standing in that window, bare-chested and rumpled from a night with another woman, while you are in slacks and a simple hoodie beneath him with your heart cracked wide open, bleeding into the pavement.
âI donât wanna do this right now, Bucky,â you snip, voice losing patience. But you are so tired.
Bucky sighs and runs a hand through his hair, frustration growing, seeping into his voice. âYouâre killinâ me here, sweetheart. Just tell me whatâs goinâ on. Itâs cold out, doll. Youâre not even wearinâ a jacket.â
You swallow down a choked breath.
Because this is making things so much worse.
That he cares. That he is looking at you like this, like you matter, like you are his.
Like you are something he wants to figure out. And he wants to take his time with. Like he wants to fix you.
But you are not broken. You are just in love.
âBucky,â that girl calls out again, dragging his name out, voice honey-thick and pettish. âCome on babe, let it go. Just-â She tugs at his arm again, nails skimming along his forearm. âCome back to bed.â
But he doesnât move.
Doesnât even glance at her.
His mouth twitches, jaw ticking as he exhales sharply through his nose, shaking her off with a firm roll of his shoulder. âWould you quit it for a sec?â His voice is edged now, tinged with a kind of terse impatience he seldom ever lets out. âJesus, mâtryin to talk here.â
The girl huffs, clearly displeased, but Bucky doesnât spare her another second.
But the one second he threw his head around at her was your chance. Your feet move before you can think, before you can talk yourself into staying, because if you do, if you let him pull you in, let yourself hope-
âWoah, doll, hey. Wait, I-â
His voice is frantic, stammering over its own syllables and filled with too many things your mind is too jumbled to focus on.
But it makes you stop your body in the midst of a step. And you grind down on your teeth against the frustration burning inside you.
You should keep walking. Shouldnât have stopped.
But Bucky is leaning even further out now, his knuckles bracing against the sill, the night air tousling his hair, eyes wide and concerned, searching. One of his arms is reaching out, down to you as if he could touch you like this.
âHold up, yeah? Iâm cominâ down.â
You whip halfway back to him, brows snapping together, heart slamming against your ribs.
âNo, you-â
Heâs already pulling himself back inside, shaking his head as if it should be obvious. âIâm coming down,â he repeats, more insistent, more sure. Leaving no room for argument.
Your fists squeeze the fabric of your hoodie. Your stomach churns. âBucky-â you try again. But he has already made up his mind.
âWait there, alright?â His voice dips lower, steadier but still urgent. Resolute, as if he would run after you if you bolted down the street. âDoll. Promise me youâll wait.â
Something in his tone, the look he is giving you, like heâs begging, almost a sweet-talking declaration. Itâs catching your breath somewhere in your throat.
You could run.
You should.
You should turn right back around, disappear into the night, and leave him standing there, shirtless and confused and worried.
But you hold his gaze for just one long and heavy beat, then exhale shakily, shoulders dropping slightly.
âOkay,â you say weakly.
Bucky nods determined and taps his fingers against the windowsill, before rushing away, leaving the window wide open.
And you stand there hating yourself for waiting.
Hating yourself for hoping.
Technically, you could just leave.
Take a different route to Natâs apartment, slip into the dark veins of the city where his voice wouldnât reach, and let him walk out onto an empty sidewalk with his hair still tousled from another womanâs fingers and the taste of someone elseâs lips still lingering on his own.
You could make him feel just a fraction of what you feel, with something hollow pressing up against his ribs when he finds nothing but cold pavement where you used to stand.
But you donât.
You know you wonât.
Because it wouldnât just frustrate him. It would hurt him.
And thatâs the one thing you could never bring yourself to do.
Not Bucky.
Never Bucky.
You know him. The way he chews at the inside of his cheek when heâs trying not to say something reckless. The way his brows pull just a little too tight when heâs agitated but trying to play it off like he is fine. The way he folds his arms over his chest, not because heâs closed off, but because he needs something to hold onto.
You know exactly how he would react if he stepped out here and you werenât there.
How the slight crease between his brows would deepen. How his fingers would twitch, opening and closing, like heâd missed his chance to catch you. How his lips would open and he would stare helplessly around and call your name.
And god, as much as this pain is devouring you from the inside out, pushing its way into the light but leaving you sitting in the dark, as much as your heart feels like being torn apart with unsaid words and unmet confessions - you cannot stand the thought of hurting him.
So you stay.
With feet planted on the concrete, fists clenched so hard, that your fingers start to cramp. You lift your trembling hands to your aching cheeks to hastily scrub away the fresh wave of tears surging forth downwards, willing your body to erase any evidence of your devastation.
But the more you wipe, the more it hurts.
You believe your cheeks are red from the effort of wiping so much, eyes swollen and puffy, your body trying to rebel against all of your commands.
Inhaling shakily, you force the breath down, down, down where you can pretend it doesnât hurt so much. You angle your face slightly away from the building, hoping the dim spill of moonlight wonât betray your inner struggles.
Because the moment Bucky steps out that door, it will be the same as always.
Heâll look at you like you are his best friend. Like you are his safe place. Like you are the person he can always count on.
And you will look at him like you arenât falling apart.
Like your heart isnât unraveling at the seams.
Like you arenât drowning in a love that will never be returned.
The door swings open with a force that startles you, the sound of it hitting the frame a little too sharp against the night.
Bucky storms out onto the sidewalk like heâs got something urgent to say, like the world might stop spinning if he doesnât get to you fast enough. He doesnât hesitate. Doesnât pause. Just moves straight to you, his steps quick, closing the space before you can change your mind about standing here. He has a crumpled shirt thrown on and it hangs a little off. But it makes you want to run so hard.
His fingers wrap around your arms, not hard, not forceful but firm.
Those warm hands on you make you want to crumble.
His breath is coming fast, chest rising and falling, like he ran down the staircase to get here as fast as possible.
His eyes are so deep, deep and blue, roaming your face with so much intensity, searching and scanning and pausing.
Shadows cast over his sharp cheekbones at the way his brows are furrowed, his lips slightly parted.
âWhatâs going on, doll? You been cryinâ?â His voice comes out rough and he talks fast. Urgent, breaths spilling over themselves as he rushed through the words, almost tripping on them in his desperation to get them out. âWhyâve you been crying? What happened?â
His thumb twitches against the fabric of your hoodie.
You open your mouth, close it again. Your throat is dry from the sobs you tried to silence earlier. You shake your head, a knee-jerk reaction.
âI was just going to Natâs, Bucky. Nothing happened.â
Itâs a weak excuse, said in a weak voice.
And you hate how it makes Buckyâs expression shift. That tiny wounded something that crosses his features, something that shouldnât be there, because you did wait for him, you didnât leave, but itâs still not enough. You lied to him. And he knows it. And heâs hurt. And you hate yourself.
He shakes his head, his jaw going tight.
âNo,â he murmurs, eyes never leaving you, voice so low. âThat ainât nothinâ, doll. Câmon. Youâre runninâ off in the middle of the night, how could this be nothing?â
You look away. Because if you keep looking at him, him with his concern and confusion and hurt all interflowing in the pool of those blue eyes, you wonât be able to hold yourself together much longer.
You swallow hard and force yourself to breathe slowly.
The sting behind your eyes is never really leaving you.
Bucky leans in, just a little. His grip on your arms tightens, but itâs not harsh. Only insistent. Desperate for you to give him something here.
âSomethinâ up with Natasha?â His voice is gentle, like he knows this has nothing to do with her, but he has to ask anyway to go through all the possible options of what might be going on.
âNo,â you croak, barely managing the word.
He softens at the sound of it, but that frown doesnât ease.
âWhatâre you doing then, huh? Whyâre you running off like that? Sâ not safe, you know that.â His voice is soft. Almost like heâs trying to soothe a skittish animal. But the concern is wrapping around every word. âWhatâs got you so upset, sweetheart? Talk to me, yeah? Please?â
His voice takes on a desperate intensity. Like heâs begging you to just let him in. To make him understand.
You bite down hard on your bottom lip, willing it not to tremble, willing your face not to crumble right in front of him, but the air is too thick for your airway, making it harder and harder to breathe.
And Bucky is looking at you, like you are breaking his goddamn heart. Like you took a shot straight for it.
He is so full of worry, it looks painful, the crease of his brow always there when heâs thinking too hard, when heâs feeling too hard. His lips are still parted, like he wants to beg for an explanation, for some string of words that will make this all click into place and turn this into something fixable.
Because Bucky Barnes fixes things.
But this might be the only thing he canât fix.
His hands on you are a contrast to the way you feel as if youâre falling apart. You hate how much you just want to collapse into it, to let yourself lean into him, let him hold you up. Because he would. You know he would. He would pull you in without hesitation, wrap his arms around you like he has done so many times before.
But you donât want him to hold you. Donât want him to hold you like a friend.
You want him to hold you like he means it. Like you mean something more than the sum of all the nights you spent choking on your own silence, swallowing words you could never say.
So all you can do is stay frozen, bones locked, eyes burning, heart splitting itself open in the middle of the street where he doesnât even know heâs killing you.
âI-â
You try. You really try.
But then the door swings open again. And the sound of it alone is enough to send a bolt of ice down your spine.
Because this time itâs her walking out.
She steps out onto the sidewalk like she has every right to be a part of this moment.
Like she hasnât spent the first part of the night in Buckyâs bed. Like she hasnât been touched by him, kissed by him, fucked by him, wanted by him in a way that you have only ever ached for.
Like she hasnât taken something that was never hers to have.
But itâs not yours either.
She looks so composed, too. More put together than you would have imagined. Her hair smoothed, clothes adjusted, skin glowing in a way that tells you she wasnât just sleeping up there - she was living in something youâve been dying for. She probably took a moment in your bathroom to check herself, to fix her lipstick, maybe even to admire herself in the mirror while you were downstairs, breaking apart.
She had the time for that.
Meanwhile, you can barely stand.
Your body is alive with magnitudes of unspoken things, suffocating. You feel like youâve been sanded down, like a piece of wood, leaving nothing but the ache and longing and all the words you canât say. This destruction is slow and ruthless, it doesnât come with an explosion, but rather a slow erasure.
Like youâre being unmade. Piece by piece.
Like you were never meant to be here in the first place.
And Bucky is still looking at you.
Not at her.
You.
And maybe that should be enough. Maybe it should mean something.
But it just puts more pressure on the knife that is already turning around in your flesh.
The girl doesnât leave and Bucky stiffens.
âBucky,â she drawls, almost lazy, like sheâs bored with this already. âAre you coming back up, orâŚ?â
Your stomach lurches.
You feel exposed, scraped raw, like youâve been trampled over, flattened by something massive, left behind for everyone else to step around.
Bucky lets out a slow breath through his nose. His jaw works under pressure. And then, he huffs. Annoyed. Like sheâs interrupting something important.
âGo home,â he flatly tells her, his attention still on you. Not even addressing her with a name. Perhaps he doesnât even know it.
âSeriously?â she scoffs, crossing her arms. Her eyes flick between the two of you.
Bucky exhales another breath and drops one of his arms from you to scrub it over his face, pushing through his hair. He turns toward her just a little, stance rigid.
âYeah, seriously,â he mutters, already turning back to you. âIâll call you a cab if you need-â
âGod, youâre such a dick,â she snaps, cutting him off, rolling her eyes with an exasperated huff. âUnbelievable.â
And then sheâs gone.
But so are you.
You donât even think about it. You just move.
Your arm slips from Buckyâs loosened grip, your body already shifting, already turning, already pulling you down the sidewalk, away from him, away from this.
Itâs pathetic. You know this. But you have to get away.
Your vision is a blur, the streetlights smearing into a soft, hazy glow against the wetness welling in your eyes, and no matter how much you try to breathe through it, itâs too much. Simply too much.
Youâre hurting. And you need to go. Now.
But Bucky doesnât let you.
âWoah, whoah, hey!â His voice is quick, rushed, and then he is moving, closing the space between you. And this time, he cuts you off completely, stepping right into your path, right in front of you, blocking the way like a wall. Heâs so broad in front of you, and so fucking present, making it impossible to escape.
You stop so fast it almost sends you stumbling back.
His eyes flick over you so quickly, so intensely, scanning for something he doesnât understand but is so desperate to find.
âAlright,â he exhales, low and careful, holding his arms out as if ready to stop you again if you make a run for it.
âYou want me to put you in chains to keep you still?âItâs a weak and failed attempt at humor.
And itâs not funny. Not even close.
His voice is too thin, too strained, and there is something in his eyes, something tight and aching, that makes it clear he is not even trying all that hard to make his joke work.
You donât smile. Donât look at him. Arms still around yourself.
Buckyâs throat bobs as he swallows, as he shifts his weight, as he lets out another slow and deliberate breath. He moves so slow. As if any tiny movement of him would make you walk away from him.
âWhatâs going on with you, mhm?â His voice is so soft. So concerned. Brooklyn warmth and worry combined with something gentler than you can handle right now.
âWhatâs this - this fight-or-flight thing you got goinâ on?â he continues, tilting his head just slightly, watching you too closely, reading too much. âYouâre rushing off like the damn place is on fire. The hell is that about, doll?â Still so soft. So cautious.
His eyes are on you like you are the only thing in the world that matters, like heâs trying to solve you, like if he just looks long enough, heâll figure it out.
But if he really understood, if he really found out, everything between you would change.
And you canât handle that. You canât handle anything at the moment.
âJust drop it, Bucky, alright?â It comes out sharper than you mean for it to. Harsher. A little spit of venom that you hate yourself for the second it hits the air. He doesnât deserve your attitude. But you canât hold it back.
You see the way it lands. The way his brows pull in tighter, the way his lips press together, the way his chest rises and falls so measured. But itâs all not out of irritation. He just tries to figure out where that came from. What is happening. What has you react the way you do.
His voice is even and calm. But oh so careful. âI donât think I will, doll.â
You look anywhere than at him and his troubled face.
Your throat tightens so fast, you have to swallow hard against it, teeth digging into the inside of your cheek as you blink up at the sky like maybe that keeps the tears from spilling over.
And Bucky watches all of that.
His expression stays soft, but his eyes are burning with something deep, something real, something that makes you feel like you might actually drown if you keep looking at them for too long.
âY/n,â he almost whispers, and it sounds so pained. âWhy are you crying, sweetheart.â Heâs so gentle, so tender, so fucking careful like heâs afraid that if he pushes too hard, youâll just break.
You shake your head, arms around yourself tightening. âIâm fine.â
Bucky makes a quiet noise in his throat, somewhere between a sigh and a scoff, something deep and disbelieving.
âSee, thatâs bullshit.â
Youâre about to turn again, but he anticipates and gets hold of your arms.
âLook,â he sighs, heedfully taking off a hand of you to rub it down his face. âYou donât wanna talk? Fine. You wanna bite my head off cause Iâm askinâ? Fine. But donât stand here and tell me youâre okay. Because Iâve got eyes, doll, and I can see that youâre not.â
You want him to stop.
You want him to turn around.
You want him to leave you here to fall apart in peace.
But he wonât.
And you donât know what to do with that.
And you break.
No matter how hard you bite your lip, it doesnât matter.
The tears slip and streak down your face before there is anything you can do. A sob follows. You canât choke it down. Your shoulders shake, your breath stutters, and your face tilts towards the ground as you bring trembling hands up to wipe at your cheeks, in a futile and desperate attempt to regain composure. Itâs useless.
You feel so pathetic.
Embarrassed. Ashamed that you ran off like this. That youâre standing here, crying in the middle of the night, on a sidewalk with no explanation, making a fool of yourself in front of him.
And the second your face crumbles, his does, too.
The second your breath hitches, he is moving.
Strong arms envelope you, winding tight, pulling you straight into his chest like he doesnât even need to think about it. Not for a single second.
You let him.
Because itâs either this, or youâll collapse down onto the asphalt.
His grip is firm, grounding, warm in a way that makes you ache even more. His hand cradles the back of your head, tucking you against him, and you feel the press of his lips there, gentle, but somehow rough.
Like your pain is his own.
âItâs okay. Shh⌠itâs okay,â he breathes, pained and low, the words pressed into your hair, into your skin. Making space between your ribs. âOh, doll.â He presses you tighter to him. His hand brushes over your hair. âItâs okay.â
There is something so deep and aching in the way he talks to you, like the sound of his own voice hurts him. Like you hurt him.
His other hand moves over your back, soothingly, trying to give you some strength.
âI gotcha,â he breathes. âMâhere, doll. Okay? Just breathe. Gotta breathe for me, baby. Please.â
Itâs a slip. Baby. A mistake.
And it makes you cry harder.
Because itâs so soft. Gentle. Because it falls from his lips like something thatâs always been there, something thatâs always belonged to you.
Except it hasnât.
It doesnât.
Not in the way you want.
You donât know what he calls those girls he takes home. If they get to hear him say it. Girls who have felt his hands in places you never will. Girls who have heard his voice rasp against their skin in the dark.
But you are not one of those girls.
You never will be.
And you know you will never be able to untangle that damaging wrench in your stomach.
So hearing him call you that. Baby. Like it means something. Like itâs yours. Like it hasnât been whispered in the dim glow of your apartment, murmured against someone elseâs lips, someone elseâs skin, just someone else just hours ago.
Itâs too hard. too cruel.
You wish it didnât matter. You wish it didnât rip through you the way it does, splitting you down the center, carving you open.
But it does.
Because even if it doesnât belong to you, you still want it.
So you cry harder.
Sobs wrack through you, your chest hitching with the force of them, your hands gripping the fabric of his shirt, clumping it in your fists.
Bucky feels it and he hears it and he grips you tighter, pulls you closer.
âHey, hey, hey,â he coos, voice just above a whisper, more desperate now. Like heâs drowning in your hurt right along with you.
âSweetheart,â he tries again, voice strained, thick. His lips are in your hair. âPlease talk to me. Make me understand, baby, please! Tell me whatâs wrong.â
But you canât.
Because what the hell would you even say?
That youâre in love with him?
That youâve been in love with him?
That seeing him with her - hearing the sounds that bleed through the walls, the ones youâll never be able to unhear - feels like being skinned alive?
That you want him in a way you shouldnât?
That you want him in a way he will never want you back?
You wonât.
So instead, you just press yourself harder into his chest and squeeze your eyes shut, letting him hold you like you are something precious. Like you are his. Even if you are not.
âHelp me understand here, baby. Please,â he repeats with a voice so soft, that makes him seem afraid you might break apart completely if he speaks any louder.
Maybe heâs right. Maybe youâre already in pieces at his feet, shattered beyond repair, and he just hasnât realized it yet.
He lets you cry when you donât answer, hand stroking up and down your back, the other soothing over your head. He whispers into your hair, words you canât even process, just the deep cadence of him, the low rasp of his voice against your temple.
His lips move to your forehead, brushing over it. His breath is warm against your skin. You donât have it in you to pull away, but you wish you would.
Because none of this makes it any easier.
Because his hands feel too good, too steady, too right - and itâs a lie.
Because itâs him.
And that means it hurts.
You wish he would just go and let you have your pathetic heartbreak alone.
But Bucky Barnes has never been the kind of a guy to leave things unsolved.
He pulls back just slightly after a while, just enough to get a better look at you, and when you try to duck your head, to keep him from seeing too much, he doesnât let you.
Strong, warm fingers cradle your face, thumbs brushing over the damp skin of your cheeks, tilting your head up and forcing your gaze to his.
He looks wrecked.
His brows are drawn, lips parted, chest rising and falling unevenly. His hands tremble just a little against your skin, but his grip stays firm. Solid.
âDonât look away, doll. Eyes on me, yeah?â
You swallow hard, jaw tight. âYou just ruined your good night,â you say, the words falling out bitter, self-deprecating, stiff with something that tastes like resentment but feels like heartbreak.
Buckyâs frown deepens, his lips pressing together, eyes scanning over your face like heâs searching for something, anything thatâll make this make sense.
âThe hell I did,â he scoffs, shaking his head. Confused you even brought this up. âI donât give a shit about her. Donât even know her name, if Iâm beinâ honest.â He lets out a huffed laugh.
But you donât.
Because somehow this makes it worse.
And you hate it.
You hate that some part of you wanted her to mean something.
Because if she meant something, if she was special, then at least this ache in your chest would have a name. A reason. A shape you could hold in trembling hands and squeeze so hard that it stops hurting at one point.
Then, at least, you could maybe finally accept that there is no hope. No reason to hold on to those feelings.
But Bucky just shrugs.
It meant nothing. It never meant anything. Not with them.
Not with the girls that come and go, the ones who pass through his nights in the same easy way the hours do - fleeting, ephemeral, touched, and forgotten.
Not with anyone. Not even with you.
You have spent so long feeling this, holding onto it, trying to keep it hidden beneath layers of friendship and longing and careful restraint. You have spent so long pretending that it is fine, that it doesnât matter, that you can live like this - on the sidelines, just the girl in the other room, in the shadows, in the spaces between what you want and what youâre allowed to have.
And he stands here and looks you in the eyes, telling you that it is nothing. That she is nothing. That they - all of them before her, and all of them after her - are nothing.
You can barely breathe past it.
You donât say anything.
And Bucky freezes.
His hands, where they cup your face, stop their soft, absentminded strokes. His thumbs, which had been tracing reassuring circles along your cheekbones halt. His breath catches and his eyes shift.
There is something uncertain in there.
And then, his lips part. His brows go up ever so slightly. His pupils flare.
Something settles over his expression that you donât recognize.
Like a switch has been flipped.
Like a puzzle piece has clicked into place.
Like suddenly he is seeing something in your eyes, something like an answer, something that has been there all along.
His fingers tighten, anchoring himself. Making it seem that if he lets go, if he moves even a fraction, something will break. In him, or you, youâre not sure.
He pulls back. Not far. Just an inch. But he needs to see you better. Just enough to search your face for something he needs to know. His gaze locks onto yours and holds you there, testing something, making sure.
His voice is hushed when he talks. Breathless.
âIs that what this is about?â
Itâs quiet, the way he says it. Like heâs afraid of it. Like heâs careful with it. There is disbelief on his face. Astonishment.
You shake your head too fast, too sharp, like if you deny it hard enough, itâll erase the way heâs looking at you right now. That itâll undo the meaning of his words and the way they sit between you. Something fragile on the verge of breaking.
âNo,â you say, but it barely comes out, barely sounds convincing. Your voice is hoarse, scraped raw form holding back everything you donât want to say. Your lungs refuse to work in sync with the rest of you. You swallow, eyes darting away, grasping for something to latch onto.
But Bucky doesnât let you.
âDollâŚâ It comes like a sigh. Weightless and soft. His hands donât drop from your face, donât loosen, donât give you the space youâre so desperately trying to carve out between you. If anything, his grip grows more robust. Just enough to keep you there.
âHey. Look at me.â His tone is low, carrying the kind of warmth youâd usually like to lean into, but now all you want is to get away from it. You donât want to meet those stormy blues.
Buckyâs thumbs are sweeping, so feather-light, over the curve of your jaw, smoothing along the damp trail of your tears, and his voice dips even lower. Softer. He is so close.
âCâmon, sweetheart. Give me somethinâ here.â
Itâs not fair that he gets to call you all those sweet names like he means them. Like you mean something. Like itâs not the same word he probably called her and all those others who got to have him, even if only for a night.
âI donât-â you try, but your voice is trembling and thick with tears, and Buckyâs gaze shadows.
âDonât what?â he coaxes, leaning in just a little, close enough that his breath skims your skin, warm and stable in a way you arenât. His fingers slightly move against your cheeks, as if resisting the urge to pull you closer.
You shake your head again, your hands wrapping around his wrists - not to push him away exactly, but to have something to hold onto. You have no idea what to say.
âItâs- Itâs not-â Your words trip over themselves, stuck somewhere between your throat and your ribs, tangled up in everything youâve never let yourself say.
But Bucky just watches you, unreadable things swirling in those impossibly blue eyes. Wary things. Still so damn careful.
He exhales and his hands slide down, skimming the column of your throat, settling against the curve of your neck like heâs grounding you. Holding you both together.
âDoll,â he sighs, and itâs too much.
Itâs not teasing. Itâs not playful. Itâs not easy. Not the charming lilt he likes to throw in his tone.
Itâs vulnerable. Tender. Substantial.
âYouâre breakinâ my heart here.â
And thatâs what has another tear slip over your lashes.
Because youâre breaking his heart?
What does that even mean?
You were the one trying to escape the heartache he caused and now he tells you itâs his heart that hurts?
âPlease,â he whispers, and his voice is wrecked, gravel thick in his throat. âJust tell me, doll. Tell me what I did. Tell me so I can fix it.â
His lips stay parted, trying to find air, trying to find some kind of solid ground. There is a sheen over his eyes.
âI canât-â Your voice cracks, but you donât look away this time. His hands wonât let you. He wonât let you.
His eyes are pleading.
âCanât what, sweetheart?â he urges, dipping closer, voice just a rasp of sound between you. His thumbs wipe away the new tears and he winces while doing it as if it actually causes him pain that they fell.
The streetlight flickers above. It casts shadows across his face, highlighting the sharp line of his jaw, the tight pull of his mouth. His fingers flex against your face.
âIs it-â he starts, then stops, then starts again, throat bobbing and voice rough and hesitant. âIs it those girls?â
A shallow gasp slips from your lips. Fractured and tripping over something unseen. Your shoulders grow stiff.
You canât answer. You only shake your head, not in denial, not in confirmation, but in something else, something tired and so fucking done with feeling like this.
You try to pull back, try to slip free from the heat of his palms, try to turn away. Another tear drops onto the back of his hand.
Your reaction must be answer enough.
Buckyâs head, Buckyâs hands, Buckyâs eyes, Buckyâs whole body - everything is moving so much, keeping you from slipping away, reaching for you, not letting you go.
A breath. A pause. Like his brain needs an extra moment to process what this all could mean. His breath catches in his throat and you can feel the exact moment he gets it.
The exact moment he realizes.
âShit,â he breathes, so quiet you almost miss it. His grip tightens. It grows distressed. Despairing. Keeping you from leaving his hold, although you donât stop trying.
You sob and his hands press into your cheeks, thumbs smoothing away tears like he can erase this, like maybe if he holds you tight enough, he can go back five minutes, five months, five years, to a time before he made you feel like this.
âShit, doll, I-â His voice breaks, gravel and regret and anguish - and something so painful - landing with every syllable.
You donât stop trying to pull back, trying to push him away. You canât talk. You canât stop crying. You canât look at him.
But Bucky is devastated. And he is desperate. And he wonât let you go.
âNo, no, donât - please, Y/n, donât.â He runs through his words, frantically getting them out, frantically trying to make you look at him.
He reaches your face again and holds on like itâs important. Your tears wonât stop falling. A whimper falls from your lips when you realize he wonât let you leave.
Bucky panics.
His swallow seems to hurt him. Everything he does seems to hurt him.
âOh, sweetheart - fuck, fuck, I didnât-â He lets out a rough breath, one of his hands letting go of you to scrub over his face, pushing through his hair in frustration.
Not at you.
At himself.
âDoll, I didnât - Jesus Christ, I didnât know.â
It comes out hoarse, scraped down to nothing but feeling. Each word drags from his throat like sandpaper against silence. Coarse and raspy.
And then heâs shaking his head, hands sliding to your shoulders, his hold firm, his eyes darting over your face like he is trying to memorize it, searching for the right words in the curve of your lips, the glisten of your tears, the way your breathing is a single shuddering mess.
âI didnât - fuck, I didnât mean-â
He seems to hold back a scream.
Sucking in another sharp breath, he squeezes his eyes shut like heâs in pain, angry at himself, wanting to go back and rewrite everything, tear out every page where he made you feel like you were anything but his.
You wish you could believe it.
âBucky-â you croak out.
âNo, donât-â His head doesnât stop shaking. His jaw is clenched tight. Hands shaking against you. âDonât say my name like that.â
âLike what?â Your voice is whisper-thin.
His breath shudders out, and when his eyes meet yours again, they are so earnest. Glossy with a sheen of tears.
âLike itâs over.â
Your throat closes around your next breath, never making it reach your lungs.
Because what is he saying? Nothing ever had the chance to be anything.
âI didnât know, doll,â he whispers, voice breaking. âI swear to God, I didnât know. You gotta believe me, I - fuck, I never wanted to hurt you. Never wanted you to feel like- I didnât think youâd-â
He cuts himself off, voice choking.
His hands drop suddenly, like he doesnât even deserve to hold you anymore. Like the guilt is weighing them down.
And then, unsure and hesitantly, he lifts one of them again and pauses before cupping your face, waiting for something - permission, maybe, or just a sign that you wonât pull away this time.
When you donât, when you just keep standing there, frozen and broken and bewildered, he lets his palm settle warm against your cheek, his thumb brushing so lightly it sends a shiver down your back.
âTell me how to fix it. Tell me I can,â he pleads, like he means it. Like he would do anything. âTell me what to do, baby. Anything. Iâd do anything. Just gotta tell me. Please,â he chokes out.
Cars roll past you. There are voices in the distance. A neon sign flickers. But none of it touches this.
This thing between you.
Buckyâs hand shakes against your cheek. His breath stirs against your skin so ragged and he leans in. His forehead presses to yours, his body curling toward you like he doesnât even realize heâs doing it, just needing to be close.
âIâm so sorry,â he gasps out. âGod, Iâm so fucking sorry.â
Never have you seen Bucky like this. He keeps things easy, keeps things light, and shrugs off pain like it never quite reaches him. But it does now.
It consumes him.
His fingers curl at the back of your neck, not pulling, just holding, grounding himself against you. And when you continue standing there, breath shaky, tears still trembling in your lashes, his whole body sags.
His chest heaves with a breath so deep it sounds like itâs costing him something.
âI never meant for this to happen. Please, believe me.â
His forehead presses harder to yours, seemingly trying to press his words straight into you, that maybe if he gets close enough youâll feel how much he means them.
And you do. You just donât know what the hell is going on.
He lets out a sound that resembles a sob. And then you feel the damp heat of a tear where his face brushes against yours.
Bucky is crying.
It breaks you. You donât know what to do with all this pain. His and yours. Donât know how to ever let it go.
You pull back. Just slightly. Just enough to breathe, to think, to process.
But Buckyâs whole body tenses, and his eyes squeeze shut as if he knew it was coming but it still pains him. Bracing himself for something he already knows is going to hurt. His hands drop to his sides.
And maybe that should give you some kind of satisfaction, a tiny sense of justice for the nights you spent lying awake, wondering if you meant anything to him while he had his hands on someone else.
But it doesnât.
Because the way he is looking at you, when he cracks his eyes open again, when he meets your gaze with so much open ache, makes your chest hurt. It makes something inside of you quake.
âBucky,â you start, but your own voice is so small, so lost. You shake your head, scanning his face, trying to piece it together, to make sense of something that refuses to fit. How the tables have turned. You just canât seem to find the irony in it. âWhat are you even - I donât - I donât I understand.â
His throat bobs, thick and tight, and he pulls in a breath like itâs the last one heâs going to get.
âI love you.â
Your mind blanks. You flatline. Your knees go weak.
He says it like itâs the simplest thing to say. As if it is the most obvious thing in the world. But it isnât.
Because if it was then why has he spent all those nights with those seemingly meaningless girls. Why has he let you ache for him while he touched someone else.
âI love you,â he says again, softer, trying to make sure you believe it.
But you donât know how to.
Your lips part, but nothing comes out. You feel the words, heavy and warm and terrifying, but your body doesnât know what to do with them. Your mind is screaming at you to run, to protect yourself, to build the walls back up before itâs too late, but your heart doesnât listen.
Buckyâs hand trembles when it reaches for you, fingertips ghosting over your jaw, waiting, waiting, waiting for you to pull away.
You donât and he steps closer again.
His whole body thrums as if he is scared to touch you but more scared not to. He looks at you with those red-rimmed and puffy eyes, so tremendously bare, holding onto your own eyes like he is drowning and you are the only thing keeping him afloat.
âSay something, doll,â he pleads, his voice so unsteady, that it guts you.
But what could you say?
Because love is not supposed to feel like this, to hurt like this. It isnât supposed to feel like your heart has been split open and stitched back together all in the same breath.
But looking at him and at the way his eyes are just as pleading as his words, at the way he is breaking right in front of you - it makes you wonder if maybe it was hurting him all along, too.
âYou-â you begin, voice barely more than a whisper. You have to stop, have to pull in a breath that doesnât seem to want to settle, have to force your hands to stay at your sides instead of reaching for something - for him - that you donât know if you can take. âBut that-â Another inhale, sharp and broken. Your chest hurts. Your whole body hurts. âThat doesnât make any sense.â
Bucky exhales, long and slow and then he drops his head. Shoulders slumping, spine curling, like something inside of him, has just given out.
Guilt.
It sits heavy in his frame, in the set of his jaw, in the way his hands jerk like he wants to touch you but knows he shouldnât.
âYeah,â he mutters, a humorless little laugh escaping, barely more than a breath. He drags a hand down his face, through his hair, before letting it fall uselessly at his side. His voice is lower when he speaks again, raspier, weighed down by something that feels an awful lot like regret. âI know.â
You watch him, waiting. Because he owes you this. Because he cracked open something you werenât ready for, something you tried to bury, and now you need to understand.
And Bucky must feel that. Because after a beat, after a deep, shuddering breath, he looks at you again.
âI didnât think I could have you,â he admits, voice quiet. Cautious. The words fragile in his mouth. âDidnât think I was allowed to even want you. To this extent, anyway.â
Air enters you unevenly, shaking on the way in like a shiver made of sound. âBucky-â
âYouâre my best friend,â he pushes on, stepping in just a fraction, like he canât help himself. His voice is getting rougher, rawer, like something in him is unwinding too fast for him to stop it. âI didnât wanna mess that up, yâknow? Didnât wanna lose you over somethinâ I couldnât control.â
Something tightens in your chest. Something shifts.
âSo you-â you swallow, shaking your head, trying to put it together, trying to make sense of it. âSo you just went around to go get yourself other girls you can fuck?â
Bucky flinches. Actually flinches.
Gaze dropping in shame, his features form a grimace. âI tried,â he croaks out, gesturing at his chest with one hand. âTried to stop feeling like this. Tried to move on, tried to-â He exhales sharply, tilting his head side to side, something torn playing out with the movement. âIt didnât work. Nothinâ worked. Didnât even make it easier. But I was afraid to face it. Really face it. So I just kept going.â
It hurts.
It hurts in a way you donât know how to hold. Donât know how to carry.
You thought, for so long, that the way you love him, ache for him, is a one-sided agony.
But he is confessing to you, eyes red and weary, voice splintering, telling you that heâs been afraid to speak it aloud too.
That he loves you, that he tried to kill it, that he thought losing himself in someone else would somehow erase you from his mind.
Buckyâs words are a fist curling around your ribs, squeezing the air from your lungs.
It should matter. It should mean something that heâs standing in front of you, breaking apart, pleading for you to understand. Shouldnât it be enough that heâs telling you it was always you? That no one else ever came close?
But he still touched them.
Still chose them, even if only for a meaningless night.
While you sat in your room, staring at the ceiling, wondering if you were going insane. While you clenched your fists so tight beneath your sheets at night, biting your tongue, swallowing it down, because Bucky is your friend and friends donât ache like this.
And yet, he is telling you, showing you, he aches too.
But instead of sitting with it, instead of letting it consume him the way it consumed you, he tried to make it disappear.
He tried to fuck it away.
And now he looks at you like you are the only thing that has ever mattered, like the ground beneath his feet, is unsteady, like he is afraid you are going to bolt at any second.
You feel like the ground beneath your feet shits a fraction of an inch, not enough to send you falling, but enough to make you question if you were ever standing solid in the first place.
âBut, doll, it-â he rushes forward, watching your pain, stepping into your space until there is barely anything between you. âIt never meant anything. Swear to god, none of âem ever meant something to me.â His hands wrap around yours, squeezing, grounding, begging. âThey werenât you. Couldnât be you. Didnât matter how hard I tried, how many times I told myself to stop thinking about you because youâre supposed to be my best friend, but I wanted so much more than that - it didnât matter. Nothinâ worked.â
He is struggling to force the words out, but he does. And they leave him with a catch in his voice. Faltering.
âI thought about you, sweetheart. Every fuckinâ time.â His voice turns frantic and he leans in to make it convince you. He watches your lips tremble and shakes his head quickly. âThought about how youâd feel. How youâd sound.â
Your breath stalls.
Bucky swallows, taking a quick pause but continuing, voice growing softer. Lower. Reverent. âTried to picture you instead. How youâd look under me, wrapped around me. So goddamn beautiful.â His voice cracks. âBut it wasnât you. And I know it was wrong, but I couldnât help it.â
He stumbles over his words, afraid of saying too much, of pushing too far, or admitting too much - but it doesnât stop hurting.
Even if you know it might not be fair.
But the thought of him with them, the thought of his hands gripping someone elseâs skin, his lips murmuring something soft against someone elseâs throat - it makes you sick.
And he sees it.
You try to blink back another wave of tears.
His hands are on your face again, thumbs swiping furiously at your damp cheeks like he can rub the hurt away.
âPlease tell me I didnât ruin this.â His voice cracks through the words, the panic breaking through. Your silence seems to suffocate him, squeezing his ribs until there is no space left for air.
âIâm so sorry, baby! I wish I could take it all back. I would.â His bottom lip trembles and he bites down on it before continuing. âTell me I can fix this. Thereâs gotta be somethinâ I can do. Anything.â
You blink rapidly, vision swimming, breath hiccuping in your throat. You donât know if there is anything to fix, if there was ever anything there, to begin with, but he is looking at you like there was. Like there is. Like it is still hanging in the air between you, waiting to be caught, waiting to be named.
And you want to catch it. To press it to your heart and cherish it.
But the wounds are fresh. Still bleeding. Still open.
The images you conjured up in your mind, him with all those girls. The sounds of him bringing one after the other home - the routine.
The giggling. The keys. The apartment door. More giggling. His chuckles. The hallway. His bedroom door. The goodbyes. The mornings.
But worst of all is that you canât even blame him.
Because what was he supposed to do? Wait for something that was never promised? Hold out hope for something that was never offered?
You had no claim on him.
But still, you hate how he tried to fuck you out of his system. Hate that he couldnât, that heâs standing here now, telling you it was all for nothing, that you were always in his head, in his bones, and that that somehow is supposed to make it better.
You donât know if it does now. But you hope - you hope so dearly - that it will get better. If heâll stick with you.
âNo more girls.â The words choke out of you, weak and broken, barely a breath. But he jolts like you have screamed them.
âNever,â he breathes immediately, shaking his head as if to get rid of his own images, gripping you tighter, his thumbs pressing into your cheeks, his eyes burning through yours. âNo more, baby. No one else. Not ever.â
Your breath catches, body sways.
There is a burn behind your ribs, not quite pain, but not far from it. It is something that pulses in time with your heartbeat. Too quick. Too uneven.
âOnly you,â he adds, his forehead dropping to yours, noses brushing, his breath warm against your lips, his hands trembling where they hold you. âItâs only ever been you.â
Heat rises up your throat, something between nausea and electricity, a burst of too much all at once.
âI got a lot to make up for.â His tone is unraveling at the seams. But it sounds firmer now. Convicted. âI know that. I know I- fuck, I screwed this up before I even knew I had a chance. And thatâs on me.â
You squeeze your eyes shut, because itâs too much - his voice, his touch, the way he is looking at you like you hung the damn moon when youâve spent years feeling invisible to him in the way that mattered.
âI donât wanna rush this, alright?â
You blink up at him. Your chest feels stretched too tight, as if the ribs themselves are holding onto something they shouldnât, something too large, something too consuming.
âI donât wanna mess this up more than I already have. I donât wanna push or expect anythinâ from you - I just wanna do this right. For you.â His voice wavers on the last word, still scared of saying the wrong thing, scared of losing something he only just realized he had. âYou understand me?â
You nod wordlessly. Almost feeling hypnotized by him. His eyes are so intense. So full.
âIâve been waitinâ for this, hopinâ for this - Christ, I donât even know how long.â
Your stomach flips, something curling in your stomach at the heaviness of his confession, at the realization that you werenât alone in this. Maybe never have been.
âAnd now that itâs happeninâ - now that I have you, even if I donât deserve it - I wanna take my time. I wanna make this good for you. Have to. I have to make this right,â he says, voice filled with something gravelly, rough like something barely holding together.
His fingers slide over your jaw, tracing along the column of your throat, memorizing the feel of you beneath his hands.
âAnd I hate-â his voice falters, eyes squeezing shut for a moment before he forces himself to look at you again. âI hate that itâs happening like this. That I hurt you first. That I didnât see this sooner.â
âBucky-â
He cuts you off with his eyes and a shake of his head.
âPlease I- I gotta do this. Gotta say this, baby.â
You nod.
He closes his eyes again for a moment like he wants to go back and shake his past self by the shoulders, tell him to wake the hell up and stop hurting the one girl he ever cared about.
He continues, voice hoarse. âI would do anything to make this different. Better. The way you deserve.â
Your breath is shallow, not quite catching, but hovering just short of where it should be, as if your body canât decide whether to brace itself for collapse.
Youâve spent so long breaking for him, wanting him in ways he never seemed to want you back. But now he is pouring his heart out and asking for something he already has but isnât sure he is worthy of.
âYou donât gotta say anythinâ right now, doll,â Bucky whispers. Afraid of scaring you off. âI know I shoulda told you sooner.â He grimaces, disgusted with himself. âI shoulda known sooner. I was so fuckinâ stupid. So fuckinâ blind.â
You donât even notice you started leaning further into him.
Bucky stares at you for a moment. You look back.
âI donât deserve you,â he says quietly. Whispers really. He exhales shakily and you feel the breath fan along your cheeks. âBut I swear to God, I will.â
You donât weigh the hurt against the want, donât let the war in your head talk you out of your next move.
Your hands reach up, curling into the fabric of his shirt and before he can say anything else - before he can tear himself apart further - you kiss him.
And for a split second, Bucky freezes.
Not believing this is happening, not expecting it even after everything he just told you.
But then, he exhales this soft and quivering breath against your lips, relief knocking the air out of his lungs.
One hand flies to your waist, pulling you in, the other threading into your hair. He kisses you back like he is starving, like he has been dying for this, like he canât believe you are real and this moment is something heâs imagined a thousand times but never thought heâd get to have.
And he is so warm. So solid. His lips move against yours, soft and slow at first - savoring you, afraid to go too fast, to push too much. But when you let out a little sigh and your fingers tighten, Bucky melts, pressing in closer, enveloping you in his arms in a way that has you feeling he tries to make sure you never go anywhere else again.
He breathes you in like you are something holy, tilting your head and deepening the kiss. He is not forceful. He takes what he can get and he cherishes it. Like he said, he wants to take his time with you. It makes you fall in love with him even more.
Itâs like he canât believe you are even letting him have this. But he kisses you with a hope and a determination that this will not be the only time he gets to have this.
And when you pull back again, he rests his forehead against yours once more. You feel the way his chest rises and falls against your own, the way his breath shakes, the way his grip does not loosen at all.
âJesus, doll,â he rasps, panting. âYou tryna kill me?â
And the way he says it, the way he looks at you, so full of longing and desire and relief makes you realize that maybe heâs been suffering just as much as you have.

âI want you. Itâs as simple as that. Iâve spent a great deal too much of my life already trying to convince myself that I can make do with less but I canât. You hear me? Iâm done. Iâm not giving up. A life without you is not enough.â
- Beau Taplin

#elixirscinema#writing challange#elixirfromthestars âĄ#bucky x you#roommate!bucky#bucky barnes fanfiction#bucky marvel#bucky barnes x reader#buckybarnes#bucky#bucky barnes one shot#bucky x y/n#bucky x reader angst#marvel bucky barnes#bucky x reader#bucky barnes x you#bucky barnes angst#mcu bucky barnes#bucky fanfic#roommate bucky#roommate au#like he means it
6K notes
¡
View notes
Text
ain't no love in oklahoma // op81 smau
description: twisters actress!reader x op81 but lando is convinced oscar is lying (from request)
a/n: sorry for being completely inactive. life happened and it didn't happen in a good way! i have a huge exam coming up soon so i will most likely still be inactive besides maybe a few short things here and there. anyways first oscar fic so enjoy! all pics found on pinterest, i don't own any
a/n pt2: might do something fun for each day in october but im not sure what so send me some ideas. also might do some more headcannons/blurbs soon here!
requests: closed but feel free to send me some messages since i love talking to you guys
masterlist

liked by oscarpiastri, glenpowell, and 2,927,641 others
youruser: go see twisters!! if you donât, you suck and you better hope you donât get stuck in a tornado because thereâs useful information in our movie
tagged: glenpowell
view all comments
oscarpiastri: proud of you!!
âł youruser: đ§Ą
glenpowell: caption is so real of you
user1: doesnât yn have a boyfriend? why is she so close to glen?
âł user2: yes but probably because thereâs limited space. yn isnât like that
âł oscarpiastri: exactly what user2 said
landonorris: cute!
âł user3: what are you doing here??
âł user4: lando in the comments?
user5: such a good movie
user6: yn + glen = power duo

liked by youruser, landonorris, and 3,951,750 others
oscarpiastri: proud boyfriend award goes to me đ thx for all the bts selfies
tagged: youruser, glenpowell
view all comments
landonorris: i just laughed out loud
landonorris: âboyfriendâ lmaooo
âł user7: i cant tell if heâs joking or serious
user8: cutest couple ever
glenpowell: aww so glad you remembered the time you took me to the aquarium, what a romantic!
âł youruser: get your own boyfriend capybara
âł user9: yn CLOCKED him
// landoâs phone//

//

liked by mclaren, oscarpiastri, and 4,027,835 others
landonorris: POLE BABYYYY!!! everyone ignore my teammates instagram posts, i have told him to stop. i think he took a hit to the head or something
view all comments
oscarpiastri: do you want to go to the farm or not?
âł landonorris: you already said i could go so no take backs
âł user10: lando is going to yn's farm??
âł user11: LANDO'S MEETING YN?!
âł user12: oh i know he's going to fangirl so hard
user13: get me someone who looks at me the way oscar looks at lando
âł user14: are we sure that they aren't the ones dating?

liked by oscarpiastri, landonorris, and 3,017,426 others
youruser: back home finally! pic 1: yeehaw. pic 2: my cat cora had her babies!!! pic 3: dinner date :)
tagged: oscarpiastri
view all comments
user15: CORA HAD HER KITTIES
âł youruser: i am officially a grandma. i feel the gray hairs coming in now
user16: oscar and yn are endgame
oscarpiastri: the best company
âł landonorris: STOP, idk how you got her in on this joke either
âł user16: i can't tell if lando knows they are actually dating and is joking or if he truly does not believe oscar
user17: boyfriend is back on the feed!
âł user18: farmer yn is back on the feed!
glenpowell: miss you lady
âł youruser: you miss my animals more
âł glenpowell: and what about it.

liked by youruser, oscarpiastri, and 4,209,384 others
landonorris: OMG HE WASN'T LYING i got to feed so many animals, got to channel my inner cowboy, AND get drunk with the yn? i can die a happy man
tagged: youruser
view all comments
oscarpiastri: believe me now?
âł landonorris: never doubted you
âł user19: lando seriously didn't believe oscar lol
âł user20: i fully thought he was joking the entire time
user21: how hard did you fangirl to meet yn, lando?
âł landonorris: surprised i didn't pass out honestly. i facetimed GLEN POWELL
youruser: so glad you had a fun time!!

liked by youruser, landonorris, and 3,298,361 others
oscarpiastri: everyone clear that this is my girlfriend?
tagged: youruser
view all comments
user22: sassy oscar
âł user23: channeling his inner lando
landonorris: yes sir đŤĄ
âł oscarpiastri: stop being weird ?
youruser: MY MANNNNN
âł user24: oh she's in deep
user25: there is one thing oscar doesn't play about in life: yn

liked by oscarpiastri, landonorris, and 4,208,763 others
youruser: didn't even know there was confusion that this was my boyfriend lol
tagged: oscarpiastri
view all comments
landonorris: how was i meant to know?!
âł user26: literally how everyone else knew, instagram.
glenpowell: yn stop posting pics of me and my boyfriend and acting like he's yours
âł youruser: i dont like this joke.
âł oscarpiastri: bromance or whatever
âł user27: they're in a throuple
âł youruser: ew
âł glenpowell: disgusting
âł oscarpiastri: huhhh
user28: couple goals forever and ever
user29: if they don't get married... love isn't real
#oscar piastri#op81#oscar piastri smau#smau#formula one#formula 1#f1#formual one smau#formula 1 smau#f1 smau#oscar piastri x reader#op81 smau#oscar piastri fanfic#lando norris#oscar piastri imagine#op81 fanfic#op81 imagine#f1 blurb#fanfic#lando norris smau#mclaren#daisy edgar jones#twisters
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Statistically Speaking...

part of the svt TA collab
kim mingyu x reader
word count: 21k
contains: TA! mingyu, fluff, smut [minors DNI], angst, statistics, ur honour they're stupid for one another, descriptions of stress exhaustion and burnout, academic burden, disagreements, mingyu is smart as hell, shitting on bad professors, smut but its a surprise [gyu gets his soul sucked while he's reciting statistical models I mean what]
words of conviction from @highvern: Kim Mingyu, total asshole , 1-800-HOT N DUMB , THEYRE IN LOVE MINGYU SHUT THE FUCK UP YOU LOSER , sick fucking freak , i know when you wrote this you put your head in your hands , OHHHM YW GOD
synopsis: In all your years of academic endurance, youâve never failed. A 100% success rate, despite you cutting it close at times. However, the line graph that is your life starts tanking somewhere around the time you began taking this hellsent Statistics in Psychological Research class. With a professor that wouldnât know his ass from his head, and an overworked, overenthusiastic, and overcaptivating TA, it couldn't possibly get any worse than this. However, statistically speaking,âŚit could.
[a/n]: this fic is set in the same universe as @highvern's wonu fic endpoint [read here!!!], some insight for wonu's pov is included here as is some of Mingyu's pov in cam's fic if you'd like to see more about what happens in the gaps!!
I want to start by thanking everyone who chose to be part of this collab fic and for being the reason cam and I were able to open up @camandemstudios in the first place. everyone's been so kind and cooperative and I still cant believe we managed to convince such amazing writers to join us on this collab journey 𼚠I love u guys
Thanking my wife camothy @highvern for brainstorming with me since day one and for betaing for me. @seokgyuu and @miabebe for also looking over the doc and reassuring me. I'm for sure forgetting someone and I'm really sorry about that, know that I appreciate you just as much đ¤
on that note, I hope you guys enjoy this fic, im HELLA nervous for some reason so plsplspls remember to reblog and send me feedback on how you liked it, I will love you forever <333
masterlist

Monday
A normal person wouldâve cried. Perhaps even sued the entire institution for all it was worth. Burn down the world, if it came to it.Â
But as you stare at the tiny 37/100 on your screen, you feelâŚnothing.Â
You couldâve said you saw it coming, which you did, but something about blaming someone else for an exam you took was beginning to feel a little manipulative.Â
Clicking off the student portal, you huff loudly, five in the morning too early for you to begin breaking down over a grade that was completely unreflective of what you were taught.Â
Or maybe it was, because as you count one, two, three hours till your dreaded Statistics in Psychological Research class, you can only hope youâll hold back from spitting in your professorâs coffee. But alas, you can only shut your laptop harder than necessary for what it costs and push the grade out of your mind.
You were tired enough to sleep for a couple more hours, and you take it as an opportunity to spite the entire course by giving just as many fucks as your professor did. Â
Which was little to none.Â
That was a lieâon your part anyway. Because you continue to show up, and probably will until you can put this course and all of its trauma behind you. Even now as you feel the inclining beat of your pulse sitting in the white lecture hall, you know this is all but you versus the universe.Â
Dr. Cho might as well have wheeled himself into the room on a skateboard with the way he struts into the room.Â
Heâs wearing a denim jacket with the sleeves cut off and jeans of a matching finish that do not fit him properly. Thereâs pins in every last colour on this earth, littering the front of his jacket with sayings that toe the silver controversial lining. There was one that said Vote for John F. Kennedy, another plain black one with I Eat Kids, and of course, the blaring Cunt written in cursive, pink sparkly letters.Â
This man thatâs pushing into his 60s stands before his slightly wilted class in his crocs, hands on his hips as he heaves a long breath.Â
âI have to say, not the turn out I was expecting on that last report.â
Heâs talking about the report you coincidentally failed, the same one you were pushed into with little to no direction and a deadline tighter than any youâve had to bully yourself through.Â
âAll I can say is to read through the feedback Iâve given and try a little harder next time.â His voice is somewhere bordering comical exasperation. Feedback that consisted of sparing â?ââs and ânoââs with zero further explanation. He could say more, but youâve learned that he simply chooses to not.Â
Besides the man that drones in the front of the room, thereâs another person in the other corner of the lecture hall. Heâs hunched over a giant pile of papers, sifting through each and every one with a pen in his other hand.Â
The TA doing a mundane task is somehow more interesting than whatever seminars of disappointment your professor was giving. Heâs crossing something out on every single leaf of paper that he flicks through, and you vaguely wonder if those were todayâs worksheets.Â
â...and post hoc tests last week, we can start on Bayesian today. Mingyu will be handing out the tutorial papers.â
The poor TA looks like he thought heâd have more time, snapping his head up to look at the professor with an expression of pure incredulousness. He staggers for a moment before heâs flicking past the pages even faster somehow, striking out what seems like the same instruction in the giant pile of papers meant for an entire lecture hall. Thereâs a rustle as about a hundred laptops are being pulled out and booted up, waiting for the worksheets to land on the desks.Â
You hear the familiar warble of papers being passed out and you watch as the TA pulls chunks of sheets out of the giant stack in his arms to slam down onto the front tables.Â
âPass it down, please⌠pass it down, pleaseâŚâ
Thereâs a voice that calls from one of the front seats, âWhat formula is the sheet talking about?â
Mingyu looks startled as he snaps back to look at the blaring empty whiteboard. In the midst of passing papers, you watch him sprint to the rolling whiteboards, pulling one of the giant flats of white over to the other side, the mechanism slamming into place with a louder than comfortable slam. It reveals another whiteboard underneath with the detestably long formula already written (and the one youâd have to figure out yourself).
 The professor remains with his chin in his hands behind his laptop, unphased.Â
By the time youâve registered the foreign symbols on the board, one of the tutorial papers has made it into your hands.
Sure enough, thereâs a quick line across one of the steps with a thick black marker.Â
Blinking hard, you attempt to pull yourself into the zone, staring at the white sheet with words that are barely stringing themselves together. Nothing out of the ordinary, especially as you lift your head to find hunched shoulders and furrowed brows all around.Â
Thereâs one person thatâs zipping back and forth, just like there always is.Â
You watch as Mingyu hunches over certain laptops and whispers in rapid explanation before moving on to the next, a looming sense of dizziness that trails behind him as he shoots up the stairs to the back rows to help someone else.Â
Thereâs a brief consideration to raise your own hand to ask for help, but one look at his disoriented gaze and the amount of hands that shoot up by the second, you guess it wasnât going to help.
Back you go, hunched over the same wretched paper as everyone else, and praying for some divine revelation.Â

Tuesday
Divine revelation did not come to you, but the good sense to make use of office hours did.Â
So here you are, a printed copy of your supposedly horrid assignment and a pack of multicolour pens in your tote, and determination in your stride, you make your way to the department building.Â
Youâve double, triple, quadruple checked the times to ensure you donât dip in at the wrong moment, swiping open your phone to re-check the room number yet again.Â
Standing outside the door, you knock with mustered confidence, waiting for something akin to an affirmative from the other side of the door.Â
Nothing.Â
You knock again.
Silence.Â
You glance around the empty hall before grasping onto the cool brass handle of the door, wrenching it open just a peep. Poking your head in, you find the roomâŚempty.
The chairs and tables that usually buzz with discussing students lay barren as you step into the room. Moving to look at the front of the room, you inhale sharply as you realise the professorâs desk has been occupied this entire time.Â
Except heâs asleep.
No, thatâs not the professor.Â
Moving closer, you watch the way his back rises and falls ever so slowly, head resting on his arm as his hand hangs limp off the table. Whipping your head around with more attention this time, you attempt to find an explanation written on the walls. But thereâs none, even in the papers that litter the table he rests his head on.
You donât need to see his face to know itâs the TA. But as you stand in the empty room, clutching the straps of your tote, you arenât quite sure what to do.Â
Another glance around the table and you realise his laptop remains on, the screen yet to sleep. Before the obvious issue of a blatant invasion of privacy can befall you, you take a step forward to take a peek.Â
Itâs his schedule, a million colours blaring on the screen in a colour coded regard with barely any white spaces. It doesnât take long to find his time slot for right now, red with importance.Â
Glancing down, the man remains fast asleep, pen still in hand as it inks a faint line on the page. You look around the room for the nth time, taking constant glances back at his laptop that tells you heâs actively missing something right now. Clearing your throat, you hunch over a tad bit.Â
âUm, excuse me.â He hardly moves. So you try a little louder, hunching over his sleeping form even further. âExcuse me.â
You couldâve sworn you heard a snore.Â
Out of instinct, you bring a hand forward to his shoulder, shaking ever so slightly as you call for him again. âExcuse me!â
Thereâs a sharp inhale and he shoots up quicker than you can back away, ensuring you get an entire backâs worth of force as he bumps into you, hard.
âWhâow!â The noise is collective, yelps and thuds as you both back away from each other.Â
âWâwhatâre you doing here?â he asks, hair still ruffled and eyes barely open as he stands at the table. Thereâs a bright yellow sticky note on his right cheek, ink scribbled on in something you canât decipher.
âUm, itâs officeââ
His eyes land on the same screen you were peering into just before and it looks like his life flashes before his eyes, widening at the sight as he slams around the table looking for something.Â
âI have to go,â he announces, gripping onto an unstrapped watch as he registers the time, his other hand shoving his laptop and a few papers into a dark messenger bag.Â
âWait, isnât it still office hours?â you call out as he whizzes past you.Â
Heâs swinging his bag over his shoulder and half tripping to the door as he calls out, âWednesdays and Thursdays.â
âButââ
âItâs on the portal.â
âNo itâs not.â
âYes itââ he pauses as he exhales loudly, closing his eyes and bringing a hand to rub across his tired face. âIâll double check. But itâs Wednesdays and Thursdays from now on. You can wait till I get back if you really want help.â
âHowââ
A loud slam! of the door.Â
ââlongâŚâÂ
Youâre left draped in silence yet again, the echoes of the slammed door ringing in your startled ears. It all happened too fast for you to process, blinking rapidly as you registered that you were now alone in the room.Â
He said heâd be back, but left you with no indication as to when. By the looks of his god awful schedule, it looked like he had something else to attend to right after whatever it was he buggered off to right now.Â
Fingers clenched into a fist, you consider your options. You could wait, sit on one of the desks and try to get some work done until he gets back.Â
The universe gives you your answer as the door opens with a loud creak in the empty lecture hall. Itâs another professor who looks quite startled to find an overenthusiastic student already present for class.Â
She stares before craning to look at the room number outside the door, âAm I in the right room?â
âUh, yes! I was just leaving,â you buffer out, moving to shuffle out immediately.Â
Youâre halfway out the door when you hear another call of an âExcuse me!â
âAre these your papers?â The professorâs full arms are up as she gestures to the still littered table.Â
The No is ready on your lips. Until it isnât.Â
Later on, youâd consider how you left that room with an armful of papers that did not belong to you. How youâd ducked under the table to ensure youâd gotten everything, down to the leather strap watch with the cracked clock face.Â
But as you stare at the stack of files and sheets that lay on your desk at home, you only know of the decent act that youâd committed.
And nothing of the hourglass youâd just turned over.Â

Wednesday
In your Sent box are three emails sent on three separate days, all asking the same recurring question, all responding with the same recurring reply.
I wanted to confirm the days and times for office hours. Iâm aware itâs on the portal but Iâd like to reconfirm.Â
Regards, YN
Dear YN,
Wednesdays and Thursdays. 4 to 6 PM.
Kim Mingyu, T.A.Â
So there you were on a Wednesday afternoon, 3:59 PM sharp, outside the lecture hall where office hours have always been. With the same tote hung on your shoulders, with the same printed assignment and pack of multicolour pens, and a separated stack of files and folders, you wrench the door open with bated breath.Â
The blended murmur of the usual hustle and bustle of the appointment reassures you first, the sight of scattered students of familiar faces reassures you second. And most of all, a conscious TA that sits at the professorâs desk, speaking to another student over a laptop screen.Â
The man does nothing to acknowledge your arrival, continuing above the babble of students that occupy the chairs and the discussion. It isnât too full, but considerably busy nonetheless despite how early youâve swooped in.Â
Thereâs a brief consideration whether this was in the TAâs job description at all, craning your neck to take a full sweep of the room to find a sparing glimpse of the man who should be here. The professor and his loud fashion choices are nowhere to be found.Â
The sigh you let out is heavy and full of an emotion you cannot possibly begin to unpack, taking a seat on one of the unoccupied chairs to slump against. Shoulders sagging, you feel every fibre of your being screaming against your better judgement to pull out some work and to be productive while you wait. Reading over your failed assignment for the nth time, the same one that seemed to be some sick form of rage bait.Â
You pull a couple things out so as to not look awkward sitting and staring into nothing on an empty desk, uncapping your pen and pulling up your sleeves like there was business to be done. Which there was, but none of which you wished to entertain.Â
People watching, you realise, is a lot easier when most of the room is preoccupied with whatever it is theyâre doing, too busy to notice your blank stares.Â
The faces are familiar, none of which are people youâve interacted with before but classmates nonetheless. The room is full of shaking legs, spinning pens and hunched backs, not an un-scrunched brow in sight. Thereâs a particular gaggle of girls somewhere around the front, their tables suggesting a work environment but between the whispers, giggles and glances to the front of the room, you assume thereâs one thing in common the both of you werenât doing.Â
Speaking of the front of the room, your matched glance finds you face to face with the student at the main table in the middle of pushing himself off his seat. Your reaction is immediate, hand coming over to slam against the flat of your bag to find the lost straps, moving out of your seat as you keep your eyes on the front of the room.Â
Bad luck must be a lover, because you realise quickly that somebodyâs already beat you to it. Before you even noticed the firstâs intentions to. The student stands beside the chair ready to keep it warm as the previous occupant leaves.Â
Slamming back down on your own seat, you realise very quickly that trying to get an audience with this TA was going to be harder than you anticipated. Thereâs multiple other sounds of frustration around the room, and you doubt the slowly increasing pool of students was going to help anyoneâs time management.Â
Realising you needed to be a little more tactical if you didnât want to sit here for the next month and half, you find an empty spot near the gaggle of girls youâd noticed before. It was right up front, just enough for you to hear when the conversation would begin to conclude at the main table.Â
Once again, the TA doesnât seem to notice any of the hustle and bustle of the room as his mouth continues to move rapidly, eyes on the question as he invests himself in his explanation.Â
It was unfortunate that the only remaining seat was right next to the louder than necessary group, but you take it as a blessing anyway. Itâs then that the one right next to you turns to stage-whisper to you.Â
âAre you here to see him?â
You donât expect a conversation, ears straining to eavesdrop on the other conversation in front of you to find your cue. You snap to look at her in surprise. âPardon?âÂ
âAre you here to see him? Mingyu?â
âUhââ Wasnât everybody? âYeah, I had a couple things I wanted to clear out.â
The revelation makes her shoulders drop as she lets out a loud sigh, âGod, I can never get anything this professor says. I've been here nearly every week trying to figure it all out.â
âYeah heâs a bitâŚunorthodox.â
âHeâs unorthodox too.â She looks over to the main table towards the TA, chin in her hands as she gazes. âA face like that is rare.â
It wasnât that she was wrong, it didnât take more than a glance to convince yourself that Mingyu was possibly one of the more attractive people youâd meet in your lifetime. But the appeal lasted for all of five minutes for you, flitting away when you noticed that he dragged along a veryâŚoverwrought⌠suggestion wherever he went.Â
It was clear he was stressed seemingly all year round, nearly just as relaxed as your professor seemed to be.Â
But Mingyu was attractive. And you realise how much of a fool youâd sound if you admitted to anything other than such.Â
âIt is. His willpowerâs somehow even rarer,â you add. âDonât know how he does it.â
âGod, tell me about it. Forget getting his number, trying to have more than a three sentence exchange with him without some statistical nonsense involved is near impossible.â Her face has fallen, a tight little frown on her face as she irritates herself with some other memory.Â
Taking a glance down at her notes, you find the printed sheet littered with glitter gel pen ink lining the edges, doodles of stars and hearts and small anime characters next to p values and z scores.Â
Thereâs a distinct sound of a chair screeching, and itâs like a large GAME OVER sign is hanging above your head.Â
You jerk in your seat, like you could jump over the table and land in the emptying seat with some god-given stroke of luck, like the person already standing next to the chair wouldnât hold a lifelong grudge against the insane girl with an unnatural acclimation to statistics.Â
Although, nothing was more unnatural than the way this TA seemed to know more than the professor. Or you were just really behind.Â
Alas, you donât tumble over the table or kick back your chair, merely making a forceful motion in your seat, palms itching terribly as you watch the girl with her open laptop balanced in her arms move to take a seat.Â
You were preoccupied, hence you do not notice that the TA has also noticed you.Â
Suddenly, the girl looks startled as sheâs told to wait.Â
âSheâs been waiting nearly a week, I really hope you donât mind,â you hear him say, voice strained as you turn to look at him. His hands are outstretched to motion towards you a few feet across from him.Â
For whatever reason, you had no thought that he mightâve remembered you. Something about his half asleep state when heâd spoken to you, perhaps he mightâve thought he dreamt it. Or heâd just forgotten it altogether.Â
The girl glances at you, and her shoulders sag a little as she nods in formality.Â
âThank you.â
It comes out of both of you, snapping to look at each other hardly a moment as you go back to smiling at the retreating student.Â
âYou can come right after her,â he reassures, his own upturned mouth tired and fading.Â
Never have you felt more awkward trying to come around the elongated student tables.Â
You pause at first, staring at the table in front of you like it was worth trying to climb over or even crawl under it to get to the desk. Another moment of eye contact as he stares at your unmoving form with a blank look, and the heat pools your skin.Â
Staggering for a moment, you end up moving past your chair and walking the way round anyway, the screeching of the chairs only nurturing the existing budding humiliation for no apparent reason.Â
It only gets worse when you sit across from him finally, backside barely touching the plastic before realising youâd forgotten your bag in your seat.Â
Mid smile in a timid greeting when you make a sound resembling something of an âOh!â as you spring back up immediately. Itâs easier to reach for your bag over the table you were sitting on, reaching across to grab it off your vacated seat.Â
The girl you were sitting next to just before makes a motion like sheâs trying to help and you have to remind yourself to smile at her as you retreat.Â
Mingyu has the very beginnings of an amused expression on his face once youâve finally made yourself comfortable across from him, clearing your throat just for something to do.Â
âRight. How can I help you?â
Pulling out your printed assignment, you bring out the sheets of stapled paper to the centre of the table, writing facing him.Â
One look at the sparse format of the cover page, he blows a full mouth of air at the sight of recognition. Without you having to say a thing, he flicks to the very last page, finding the rubric printed on a separate page.Â
âItâs a 37,â you inform him like he couldnât see the bold 37/100 in the bottom Total cell.Â
âDo you think you deserved a better grade?â he asks. It would have sounded direct, an accusation even. But he asks with an intonation of genuinity, like he actually wanted to know.Â
It stumps you regardless.
âWellâŚI know I can do better, at least,â you decide to answer.Â
âYouâre here, which means youâre at least willing to try. Thatâs a start,â he murmurs. His eyes are laser focused on the sheet beneath him, holding it open as his eyes move faster across the page than you can keep up with. Somehow talking to you while taking in the words on the paper.
âI remember marking this,â he says, looking up to address you. âYour concepts are nearly there, but your structure and presentation was off.â
âYou marked them?â
He raises his brow, âI hope that wasnât an accusation. I need to stick to the rubric.â
âI thought the professor marked the lab reports.â
âHeâsâŚsupposed to.â Thereâs a forced reservedness in his voice. âI mark them and he puts in his comments if he has any. But Iâm not sure youâd fare any better than this if it was him behind that pen either.â
Every question that floated in memorisation, from the form and structure, to the nitty gritties of the data presentation, all evaporate as you realise youâre at a loss for words.Â
Even more embarrassingly, you feel tears prick the back of your eyes. You donât have an explanation, but itâs somehow easier to feel helpless in front of the man thatâs meant to help you. âI donât know what to do anymore.â
âThatâs alright,â he says as reassurance, though it sounds awfully rehearsed. Like he has to say it everyday. âWeâll work through it.â
He lets out a big sigh, adjusting in his chair and running a hand through his hair. The motion has you noticing the dishevelled nature of the mop on his head, un-uniformed and sticking out at certain places, yet still somehow cohesive with his look. His shoulders are straight and taut, fingers working as they fiddle and flick the pen in his hand.Â
Despite it all, his shirt is ruffled and creased, unbuttoned at the first couple steps. The buttons are misaligned, one side of his collar higher on his neck than the other. It takes an effort to not reach over and fix it for him.
âLab reports can be quite tricky if you arenât sure what youâre doing. Did you refer to the tutorial?â
You mean the one that did nothing to help? âYes.â
âYou got those bits right, format and whatnot. Butââ
âIt was a lump of writing about subheadings and word counts,â you say plainly.
Mingyu lips are in a tight line. âWell, yes, but it helpsââ
âI know the results are supposed to go in the results section. I donât need a PDF to tell me that,â you cut him off. Your voice is reserved, and you hope it comes off as a point across and not a complaint. Although it was a complaint. âI want to know why the entire section was ruled off as incorrect when we were never properly taught how to write it in the first place.â
âDr. Choââ
âIs no help.â
âI understandââ
âHe canât even mark his own papers. Iâm quite sure thatâs not in your job description. Itâs supposed to be him here. Not you.â
Itâs silent. There was nothing in your voice that suggested you wished to pick a fight, on the contrary, quite calm and matter of fact. Mingyuâs fingernails are going white as his grip on his pen and paper grow stronger.Â
âAnd yet, we continue to show up. Because we do what we must.â He raises his head in control, a small smile on his face, eyebrows unnaturally raised. âAnd, better that Iâm here rather than no one at all. I can help you too.â
Help, he did.Â
Mingyu had made it quite clear his time with you was limited, but by the end of the near 25 minute session, nearly every inch of your printed assignment was covered in a rainbow of notes and corrections, additional papers and post-it notes pasted on the back as you remain careful to not lose them as you slip the stack in your bag.Â
You only remember when you spot the segregated file of papers in your bag.
âI almost forgot,â you say, slipping the files and tidbits out and in front of him.Â
âWhere did you find this?â he asks sharply, eyes widening as sees the familiar blue.Â
âYou left them at the desk of the lecture hall last week,â you say, before quickly adding, âThere was a class right after you left. I took them off the professorâs hands before they got lost. Thought it might be important.â
âIâve been looking all over for these,â he says as he goes through the pages and files. Random sticky tabs and highlighted regions across the pages. The leather strap watch with the broken clock face remains on top, and he picks it up. He looks up to you with wide, sparkling eyes and a smile that feels genuine. âThank you.â
You flush for some reason, âOâof course, couldnât just leave them there.â
Pausing, you wonder if you should make the next comment, the words tumbling out before you can make a decision. âMaybe donât run out of rooms still half asleep.â
By the grace of God, he laughs, âNo, youâre right. I should be careful.â
It isnât till youâre pushing yourself out of your chair that he continues. âYou can come in at 3:30 tomorrow.â
âPardon?â
Heâs stood up as well. âI have a free thirty minutes before office hours formally start. I can help you out a little more without the crowd.âÂ
Feet planted on the ground, thereâs not much you can do but stare. âUm, sure. I can come in a little early.â
He nods casually, âThanks again for the papers. And the watch.â
You smile, âNo problem.â

Thursday
True to your punctual nature, you make yourself known at exactly 3:29 PM.
Mingyu is at the desk, conscious and on the phone, eyes closed as he rests his face on his fist.
âI donât know if I can make time for thatâno, I understand, sir,â
Another pause as the noise from his speakers fill his ears, his rubbing over his face a little harsher than you doubt heâs entirely comfortable with.Â
âIâll see what I can do.â
His phone hits the table with a heartbreaking thud, both hands covering his face as he presses the heels of his hands to his eyes.Â
âLight on your feet or something? I can never tell when you come in,â he startles when he notices you.Â
Sheepish smile on your face, you move to sit down. âSorry.â
You know itâs invasive, and you also know you might be asking him to break some unknown university code of conduct, but curiosity takes charge as you ask a casual question. âImportant call?â
âUh, yeah, um, just work stuff,â he states, shaking his head swiftly like heâs trying to shake the thought out of his mind.Â
Thereâs a pause while you're slipping your papers and laptop out of your bag, during which he seems to have decided to divulge a little more.Â
âIt was Dr. Cho. More stuff for me to do,â he says. âAs always.âÂ
âDoes he do anything other than show up to class?â you ask through a snort.Â
âOf course he does. He cusses out every article he doesnât agree with, is anything but objective andâŚthe occasional relay of blatant misinformation.âÂ
For the record, youâd never really heard Mingyu speak at all for the months heâd been TA-ing for the semester. It was small whispers of choice words in a vague voice, the distant murmur as he exchanged with the professor too far for you to hear.Â
The voice of the seemingly quiet and diligent TA was never known to you, not until yesterday as he explained statistical models and the flaws of your data presentation.Â
Passionately too. Incredulous for a discipline so dry and unapproachable.Â
That being said, something about the grit in his voice as he positively sneered through his teeth, badmouthing his professorâit was something you couldnât quite believe he was capable of.Â
âIâm sorry you have to put up with him.â
Once again, by whatever stone of tolerance the universe bestowed in his heart, you watch him sigh and smile, âAnything for that recommendation. And the pay too, I suppose. Besides, heâs done a lot for the area, canât discredit him entirely.â
With your eyebrows raised, he seems to catch your expression. He pants out a laugh, and your stomach lurches as you watch it reach his eyes, teeth on display, a lurch in his chest; a true laugh.Â
Raising his hands in surrender, he responds, âIâm stuck.â
Thereâs nothing you can do to stop the smile that reaches your own face, turning your laptop screen towards him with the JASP software display. âI am too. Help.â
Help, he does.

Monday
Mingyu ended up giving you an entire hour on that Thursday.Â
The thirty minutes before office hours began soared by like they were nothing, and you were ready to take your leave the minute students began to scatter in as the clock hit a swift four. Except he kept going, another 30 minutes in deep concentration as he retaught you nearly everything from scratch.Â
Perhaps his proven determination to ensure you donât tragically fail is what prompted you to do this, standing at the till of your regular coffee shop as you ask, âMake that two, please.â
It might also be important to mention the 7:30 AM on the dial on a bright Monday morning as you walked into your slightly less dreaded Statistics in Psychological Research class, knowing there would only be one other person insane enough to get to the lecture hall this early.Â
Something isnât right.Â
Mingyu is in a position all too familiar to you and everyone else who shares this class, hunched over something or the other in deep focus. The sun pours in through the lifted blinds, the lights of the class turned off as natural light does more than enough of the job.Â
It also shows you a blaring hot pink post-it note on his face, all too familiar to a previous interaction youâve had with him.Â
He notices you before you need to announce yourself, brows separating as he recognises you in the doorway. ââMorning!âÂ
â...Morning.â
âYouâre early,â he comments, straightening his back with a hand behind him for support as you approach.Â
âFigured we both needed this,â you hand him a tray with his cup of coffee, eyes still trained on his lower cheek with the paper stuck to it. âItâs a latte with no sugar, but I added a couple packets on the side anyway. Just in case.â
âOâoh, thank you. And youâre right I did need this.â
Now that youâre closer, the scrawled writing on the post-it note is clearer.Â
To Do:
Call mom
Shoot myself
âYou, umââ Itâs alarmingly difficult for you to say it, despite the words being so simple. Hey! You got a lilâ something on your face.
But all you do is dumbly point to your own cheek, eyes trained on the loud piece of paper that tells more than he might like the world to know.Â
Thereâs a loud slap of his hand on his own cheek as he crumples the paper in his hands, bringing it forward to see. âFor fuckâs sake.â
âItâs okay! I wannaâŚshoot myself too sometimes.âÂ
What the fuck?
âI mean!â you correct louder than you anticipated, before covering with a laugh. âItâs okay, it happens. Good thing I caught it before someone else did.â
Itâs all the more petrifying when your voice echoes across the blatantly empty lecture hall, reverberating like it was a punishment for you and your horrid lack of volume control. Meeting his eyes feels like a sin right now, so you keep them downcast and pray he doesnât try to sabotage your education.Â
âGood thing it was just you. Yeah.â
Just you.
âAnyways, I think Iâm done with prepping for class. Do you wanna squeeze in twenty minutes of ANOVA?âÂ
âHave you seen the time?âÂ
âNot a morning person?â
âNope!â
âAnd yet itâs 7:40 on a Monday morning and youâre absurdly early.â His brows are raised as he pulls around the professor's chair to bring it to you.Â
âDo you want the coffee or not?â you ask, watching as he drags another chair for himself.Â
The both of you sit away from the professors table, coffees in hand as you watch Mingyu run a hand through his hair.Â
He gives you a crooked grin,âI apologise.â
âTo be fair,â he continues. âIâm not much of a morning person either.â
You narrow your eyes the slightest bit as Mingyu takes a sip of his unsweetened coffee, âIâm starting to think no moneyâs worth this job.â
Mingyu snorts, coffee suspended in his full cheeks. He swallows with much difficulty before answering, âYouâre right. Not sure why Iâm still here either. I could get an offer from another professor.â
âAnd that isnât happening becauseâŚ?â
Elbows on his knees, Mingyu swirls his capless coffee cup, the beige liquid moving in a growing tornado. âI like Dr. Cho.â
âYouââ
âI know,â he laughs loud, a deep, echoing sound that shakes in your ears. âI know. I sound like a lunatic.â
âI donât know about lunacy, but insanity can have its reasons.â
âAnother would argue that insanity was the very absence of reason.âÂ
âDonât get smart with me.â
âExcuse me for doing my job.â
He takes another sip of his coffee, and you ask again, âNo, but really. I canât imagine this man having too many redeeming qualities as an educator.â
Mingyu lifts his chin as he presses his lips together. âWhen I was in my first year, there was this other class I had where we had to write a lab report for the first time.â
âPSYCH101?â
âThatâs the one. Iâd never written one before, but I liked statistics enough to do a little more digging than what the assignment called for. I ended up finding one of Dr. Choâs studies, read the entire thing, word for word. I was up all night reading nearly everything heâd published, some of âem before any of us were even born.âÂ
âOh. So youâre a fan.â
âEveryone tells you to never meet your idols,â he snickers. âHeâs done amazing things, but I guess he pays for it with his flawed personality.â
âIâm sorry it had to be you,â you half joke.Â
Mingyu looks at you sheepishly, âThat might also be my own fault.âÂ
âDonât tell me you offered.â
âI might as well have. All my assignments referenced his work the most. I was always talking to him about upcoming research after class, and it was like he was a different person. Forget differing opinions, some of what he was saying was justâŚplain incorrect. He welcomed the argument though, and I couldnâtâcanâtâstand listening to someone spew nonsense when I know itâs not true. He was always emailing me extra resources whichâŚIâm pretty sure he isnât supposed to do. Only reason I did so well in his class was because I taught myself.âÂ
He sighs a loud sigh, straightening his back, âI guess he liked me more than I thought, because next thing I know Iâm getting a call over the summer telling me I have a job.â
âDid heâŚhave a TA when you were in his class?âÂ
âFour.â
âFour?!â
âTwo at a time. All of âem quit at some point. Said they didnât want the recommendation or the pay.â
âWould heâŚnot give you a recommendation anyway? You said he liked you.â
Mingyu shakes his head solemnly, âHeâs a tough cookie, everyone in the field knows that. If youâve impressed him, youâve impressed everyone.â
You take a moment to really absorb everything youâve just learned. âThatâs a sucky position youâre in.â
âTell me about it. But itâs okay. Threeâthree and a half more months to go? This isnât even the worst of it, Iâm just dreading study week when Iâm gonna have to handle all the crying.â
You wince as he mentions something even remotely close to exam season, still barely at a stage where you can accept youâd be alright with this class.Â
âI know youâre not nearly as qualified or experienced as him, but I think you could take over his class.â
âEver heard of barriers to entry? Iâd be ruined if I wanted a career in this.â
You roll your eyes playfully, âAll Iâm saying is Iâve learned more from you in barely a couple hours combined than the last two months Iâve spent cursing this very lecture hall.â
If you werenât lying to yourself, you couldâve sworn you saw a blush creep up his face, and paired with his shy laugh and hand at the back of his neck, you canât help but bite back your own smile.Â
âIf I can help you then itâs worth losing myself.â
Your heart is in your fucking throat.
âIâm glad when students tell me that,â he continues, utterly oblivious to the landslide happening in your digestive tract. âMakes me feel like Iâm doing something right.â
âYouâreââ you swallow thickly because you sound like a toad. âYouâre doing more than just something right. Youâre saving us therapy and an extra semester.â
He laughs at that, and you wish heâd let you breathe.Â
âFeels like Iâm doing something wrong sometimes,â he huffs. âMy friendâs a TA too and heâs got himself a girlfriend on top of everything else heâs got going on.âÂ
He goes on, âDo you know how many times I need to ask people to quit twirling their hair? To look at the page and not my face? Asking for my number, I have an email for a reason, for fuckâs sakeââ
Mingyu is cut off because youâre laughing, hand to mouth as your shoulders shake through your sniggering. âWâwhat?â
âIâm sorry,â you hiccup. âItâs justâŚIt sounds like you donât know what you look like.â
âWhatâs wrong with how I look?â he frowns.
âNothing!â you exclaim. âBut thatâs the problem isnât it.â
Mingyu doesnât seem to buy it, even through your coaxing as you attempt to explain to him that he is, in fact, desirable.
âCanât possibly be enough to distract people,â he huffs in earnest, still hung up on the students he canât get through to.Â
âMajority of the class would beg to differ.â
Thereâs a pause as he registers what you imply.Â
After a few moments, he drops his head, opening his mouth, âWould⌠you alsoââ
Thereâs a loud creak of the door as you hear the immediate noises of shuffling feet and chattering mouths, as low and tired as they sounded. Turning back to look at Mingyu, heâs already jumped out of his seat, wrist to face as he checks the time on the same leather strap watch you returned.Â
âThatâs our cue,â you breathe, pushing your chair back behind the professorâs desk as you manoeuvre around Mingyu whoâs suddenly frantic.Â
Of course you realise thereâs people other than just the two of you in the room, heightened in seats that are designed to ensure they can absorb every detail that goes on right where you stand in the front of the room.
But you feel the soft of Mingyuâs shirt over his wrist as you give him a gentle squeeze despite it all, barely enough pressure. Half your index finger brushes the skin of his hand, just enough to register how cold your fingertips are and how warm his body is.Â
âRelax,â you whisper. âYouâll be better off without all the panic.â
You donât see his face as you brush past him and up to your seat, looking up to see him disappear somewhere in the corner hunched over another stack of papers. The next time you see Mingyuâs face is when the professor arrives and has begun his regularly scheduled tomfoolery, and realise all the age that can accumulate in the span of five minutes.Â

Thursday
Midterm season is nothing youâve ever really had to worry about.Â
Something about the halfway point did make it obvious that the clock was ticking, but danger was far enough away to prevent the ultimate breakdowns reserved for the peak seasons.Â
Except this class isnât ordinary, and itâs all youâre able to worry about all semester. And as Dr. Cho in his Thrasher vest announces the date for the in class midterm, the glass once half empty, suddenly looks very half full.Â
âIâm not ready.â
âYouâre more ready than anyone else in class.â
âHow do you know that?â
Mingyu stares at you blankly, âIf I donât know that, then who else does?â
You have tears in your eyes, which is embarrassing enough since this is the second time youâve teared up in front of him, but also because youâre in a library following Mingyu around like a lost duck because he insists on putting the books he borrowed back onto the shelves himself after registering the return.Â
âBut I donât feel like Iâm ready,â you whine, turning the corner as he searches for the last spot to place his final book.Â
âYouâll realise just how ready you are when all those hieroglyphs on the page start to make sense to you,â he grunts the last bit out as he reaches on his tippy toes to shove the book back up.Â
Dusting his hands off, he adjusts his shirt before turning to you, âYou only feel that way because Iâve been giving you harder problems to work on. Youâre past the level you need to be at right now. Trust me, youâre more than prepared.â
âButââ
âListen,â he waves to the librarian as you both leave the library, your eyes still glistening as you fiddle with your sleeves. âItâs only the midtermââ
âOnly theââ
âIf this goes wrong, Iâm just gonna have to work you harder for the real thing. Even though I know it wonât go wrong because I said so.â
You fall into silence as he walks you towards the coffee shop across the courtyard.Â
âIâm assumingâŚâ you start.Â
âHm?â he looks over to you.
âIâm assuming you canât hint at whatâs on the paper.â
Mingyu barks out a laugh of disbelief, âYou assume correct. Iâm not going through hell with this job just to lose it because of a paper leak.â
âBut itâs just the midterm,â you mumble, not even close to remotely audible.Â
âWhat did you say?â Mingyu smirks.Â
âNothing,â you huff.
âYou know, Iâm a little offended you donât trust me.â
âWho said I didnât.â
âWell then, stop being such a worrywart.â
There must be something written on your face, because as you pass Mingyu standing at the door he keeps open for you, entering into the coffee shop with fallen shoulders, he seems to change his mind.Â
He brings you a coffee, sits you down, and gives you something else you need. âI made the paper. Every question. And I taught you. Every concept. So I definitely know youâre gonna be fine.â
In that moment, with the large glass walls of the warm coffee shop, the afternoon sun comfortably resting on every last object of the room, you donât see it illuminate anything other than the man before you.Â
Perhaps you're being dramatic at the revelation, but you donât take anything into account as you note Mingyuâs eyes and how they sparkle like they were gifted from the centre of a flaming volcano, brown and polished more than any jewel or stone youâd ever seen. Reaching out to touch him, you know youâd feel nothing but smooth stone, the indentations only possible by a being beyond what you could comprehend.Â
Heâd given you more than just reassurance, and at times, his timing makes it feel like he was sent from the heavens itself, just for you.Â
You sniffle.Â
His hands brush over yours as he hands you a napkin, and even more so, cover your own as he takes your freezing fingertips into his own palm, the contact burning you like hot coal.Â
You know heâs real. And you donât know why quite just yet, but that reassurance is enough to give you calm.

Monday
You were alright, but it seems that Mingyu seemed to disintegrate right after he was done reassuring you to the moon and Saturn and Jupiter and back.
Itâs midterm day, and as always on every Monday morning, you enter the empty lecture hall with two warm coffees in your hand, ready for whatever shitshow youâd have to perform for today.
It seems Mingyu must defect from at least one regular string of behaviour to remain as Mingyu, who on this occasion, stands before you in a baby blue polo sweater.Â
Except you only know that because you can see the unique collar, but it might also be important that his back is turned towards you.Â
âMorning, champ,â he gruffs, nothing encouraging about his voice in the slightest.Â
Your breath hitches when you finally see his face, eyes sunken in and face pale. His lips are chapped and peeling, eyes half closed.Â
âWhyâre you looking at me like that, why has everyone been looking at me like that?â he huffs in one long, rapid question.Â
âUm, I mean,â you stare at his shirt thatâs backwards. And inside out. âI canât tell if thatâs a choice or a mistake.â
Looking down at his front, he looks back up, âWhat?â
âYour collar isâŚnot at your collar, Mingyu. And your shirtâs inside out.â
Hand at his nape, he reaches his fingers down and finds the unmistakable starched planes of his collar, eyes closing at the realisation. Heâs immediately pulling his arms out of the shirt with his eyes still closed like itâd all disappear if he keeps them like that.Â
âWait!â you exclaim before he strips entirely, scrambling to put your coffees down to push him out of the room towards the restrooms. âDo you wanna strip for the CCTVs?â
You only hear him sigh as he moves out and into the hall, doors closed behind him.Â
Youâve nearly forgotten about the midterm at this point, your concern now growing in a completely different direction. By the time Mingyu returns, heâs blabbing about wondering why everyone he ran into since he left home was giving him the strangest looks, and then something about you always swooping in to save him before the real bout of disaster strikes.Â
Itâs hard for you to listen to him when youâre more worried about him passing out, his face doing him no favours to reassure you that he wasnât a breathing corpse.Â
âMingyuâŚdid you sleep at all?â
âHm?â His eyes are glazed over and unfocused.Â
âSleep? Rest?â
âOh,â he frowns. âNot really. I had emails coming in all night.â
âAnd you were replying?â
âIt's the midterm today,â he responds flatly, like it shouldâve been enough explanation.Â
You almost donât believe him. âDoesnât mean you stay up to answer something that shouldâve been cleared out beforehand!â
âCouldnât just leave them to fend for themselves,â he dramatises.Â
âYes, you could!â Your voice comes out louder than you expected, eyes wide as you realise what heâs doing to himself. âYou barely look human and itâs only the midterm.â
âWhatâre you trying to say?â
âI donât know if this job is really worth as much as you think it is.â
Mingyuâs jaw is clenched, fists tight as he releases them to grip paper weight on the desk, knuckles white. âI canât get anywhere if I donâtââ
âMingyu, please. This isnât good for you.â
He says your name. Declarative, almost like a warning. âIf you think this job isnât worth it then you just donât know.â
âMingyuââ
âNo, you donât, because Iâve seen how good of a job Iâve been doing.â
âYou have, youâve been amazing butââ
Mingyuâs own voice is raised, a hard impenetrable floor to the words he spills. âThen whatâs the problem?â
âHave you looked at yourself in the mirror lately? You look like a corpse!â
And then heâs getting out of his chair with so much force it almost knocks it backwards, âWhy on earth do you care so much? So what if I look like a corpse, if Iâm doing my job?âÂ
It mightâve been better if he knocked the chair right into you, your breath dissipating in your chest like it never existed. His face is morphed in an expression of exasperation your anxieties fear the most, every line on his face committed to irritation and anger.Â
Why on earth do you care so much?
Right. Why do you?Â
âAre you asking me that?â
âWhat?â
âAre you asking me why I care?âÂ
Mingyu only sighs, shoulders dropping and eyes closed. Like so many times before, you watch run a hand through his hair, except this time he yanks on the strands harder than ever before.Â
His eyes are bloodshot.Â
âI have to get the exam pack.â
Marching out the door in front of your own eyes, youâre left with a feeling thatâs right in the back of your throat, curling and whirling into something you wish you could hack and gag out. Gripping the corner of the professorâs desk, you feel the peeling wood cut into your skin.Â
Thereâs a draft, the delayed slam of the door has only hit its wind now, a delayed reaction. Itâs like it registers in your mind as you feel strands of your hair shift, the clarity that comes with it.
Delusive. Chimeric. Cruel.
Everything youâd subjected upon yourself. A whimsical fantasy between pages of logic and numbers, a story that simply didnât fit where the laws wouldnât allow it.Â
The null hypothesis of your most elaborate nightmares.

Monday
Your favourite commonplace box, where your mother once placed all her most prized jewels, had a finicky latch.Â
It wasnât broken, simply worn in from years of opening and closing. It took a few tries to get it shut. Simply pressing down with pressure didnât work; you had to open it again, press down on the individual elements of the latch and then try again.Â
You were never satisfied until you heard the distinct click of the latch fixing itself, the box closed and ready for you to hook your lock through.
Earlier on in your undergraduate career, you remember a professor talking about the effects of external factors on the mind, how they can sometimes cause it to âshut downâ when overwhelmed or stressed.Â
Itâs happened to you on many a occasion; like when you stayed up too late on a school night to watch a documentary about the Stanford prison experiment, or when youâd neglect food or water on busier days, or when youâd stop paying attention in class because you were too preoccupied thinking about Taco Tuesday.Â
Regardless, youâd found a way to recognise when your brain would fall into some strange kahoots with daydreams, or whatever was bothering you, and learned ways to give yourself a reset.Â
Pressuring and forcing the attention wouldnât work, just like how the latch wouldnât fit when youâd do the same with your beloved old box. So youâd take a walk, drink something cold, spray yourself with a garden hose, or even take a nap altogether. Opening yourself up, so the latch can finally click.Â
On the morning of your midterm, when youâd ensured your brain was in optimal condition for the exam you knew would be one of the worse ones youâll have to take, you were sure the only external force that could ruin your vibe was from God himself.Â
Having been so preoccupied with your mind and its functions, youâd seemed to have forgotten where your heart had wandered off to.Â
Somebody else might consider it a minor disagreement; an anxious squabble if you will. But your breakfast in your throat was enough reason to deem what happened that morning much more than that. At least for you.Â
âPass it on, pleaseâŚpass it on, please.â
The sound of his voice is tectonic. Rattling in your head like a superior force had slammed into your skull like a padded hammer to a gong.Â
You hated it. You hated everything. You hated yourself. And as the midterm paper reaches you with your pen in your clawed fingers, the first three questions already making perfect sense, you realise you hated Kim Mingyu the most.Â
That was a lie. You were lying to yourself, yet again.Â
Because it was quite the opposite. You couldnât hate him.Â
As you drift past every question of conditional experiments and screenshots of data and tables on a software, you hardly remember what you circle and what you donât. Hardly remember what words you picked for the short answers and labels. You hardly remember taking the steps down from your seat to the front of the room, where the professor sat scrolling through his Skateboarders [!MEN ONLY!] facebook group, placing your paper down and leaving the classroom.Â
Throughout your years of living, youâd learned what you needed to get your brain out of its clouded muffle, to refocus when you needed it.Â
Everything. You tried everything.Â
But on that day, when it mattered most, your latch never clicked.

Itâs Wednesday.Â
You order lunch from the Italian place a few streets down. Ravioli; itâs safe and you know youâll like it.Â
Savouring it is easy in front of another true crime show. You pull a lone soft drink from your fridge, one that your friend left weeks ago. It tastes just as bad as the last time you tasted it from someone elseâs cup, but you drink it anyway, the empty can now in your trash.Â
Itâs 3:30 PM, and you sit at your desk. Itâs strange. It feels like youâre missing something, which in ways, you are. But as you pull your laptop from your nightstand instead of out of your bag, you slow your movements.Â
The papers are the same. But you read them anyway.Â
Parameter estimation: Make inferences on characteristics of the population, including distributions of the variables and the effect of one variable over another.Â
Itâs accursed the way the universe wonât let you live.Â
Thereâs a scribble in the corner in a dark blue, estimation cannot be perfect.Â
Estimation cannot be perfect.Â
[_]
Itâs Thursday
Class. Eat. Drink. Work.
Hypothesis testing: Determine whether null hypothesis is rejected or not after data observation.Â
Thereâs a scribble in the corner in a dark blue, no null hypothesis in bayesian approach!!
[_]
Itâs Friday
Eat. Drink. Work.
Latent means to have meaning but is yet to be manifested. The greek letters are placeholder values for values yet unknown.Â
Thereâs a scribble in the corner in a dark blue; values that you will find out
[_]
Itâs Saturday
Eat. Drink. Work.
P(A|B) = [P(B|A)P(A)
              ââââââ
                     P(B)
Thereâs a scribble in the corner in a dark blue;
 it gets less complicated
 promise :/Â
[_]
Itâs Sunday.
Eat. Drink. Work.
The page is blurry. Your eyes hurt.Â
Thereâs a scribble in the corner in a dark blue;
youâve got this!!! < 3
You give up.

Itâs Monday.
8:14 AM.Â
You barely glance at the front of the room; swift turn to the left and right up the steps. Dr. Choâs outfit almost goes unnoticed by you, tamer than most. Bright Barbie pink with large polka dots, untucked into too tight white jeans. His crocs are sparkly, at least thatâs what the twinkle from up here looks like.Â
Heâs insulting another author, the manâs ProQuest journal article open for the world to see like a mediaeval scandal.Â
Thereâs another person next to the whiteboards, back to the wall, hands clasped in front of him. His hair is messy, shooting lasers into the carpet as he rocks the slightest bit, listening to the professor rip this author to shreds.Â
An hour later, youâre staring into the JASP software like it was written in a different language.Â
Glancing next to you, the boy in the spongebob hoodie is playing sharkboy and lavagirl by himself. On your other side, the girl has the same thing as you open on her laptop, her pen occupied with drawing about a hundred tiny gojos on a bright pink sticky note.Â
Bright pink sticky note.Â
You snap your gaze back to your screen quickly after that.Â
9:58 AM. You start packing up, shoving everything into your bag.Â
Dr. Cho doesnât even notice you slip out of the room, hardly a minute to the end of the lecture.
In the hallway, you take your first real breath in two hours.Â

Itâs Tuesday.
Youâve come down with something, head heavy as you feel yourself burn up. Skipping class is easy when you sleep through your alarm and every phone call from a friend asking where you are.Â
They drop by, armed with medicine and soup. You almost feel better.Â
Itâs silent after they leave, and you realise in that moment how much you hate it.Â
Opening your laptop for the first time in over 24 hours, you turn on a random podcast to play in the background, needing something to fill the air before you lose it entirely.Â
The screen lands right where you left on the incredulous data presentation, unsolved tutorial paper crumpled between the screen and keyboard like a wilted leaf.Â
Hot, scalding tears sting your eyeballs when you realise there was nowhere to turn to.

Itâs Wednesday.
After a long day of doing nothing, still sick from whatever plagued your body, you go to bed earlier than usual.

Itâs Thursday.Â
Walking out of class, your mind is empty. Youâre still sniffling, still achey, but better than you were. The shawl wrapped around you is warm, and your hood covers the cold tips of your ears.Â
This other class makes you feel better about yourself, especially when the content is digestible and so is the professor. The TA feels like a mere accessory in the room, something youâve learned to appreciate.Â
With your gaze lowered, you only see midriffs as you walk out the classroom into the busy hallway.Â
It happens in an instant, the flash of a clenched hand as the owner walks by in quick stride. An unmistakable leather strap watch with a broken clock face on the wrist.
You freeze like youâve been caught.Â
The hard bump of someone coming out the room behind you is welcomed, the annoyed âHey!â knocking you back to earth before you could even exit the dimension.Â
Youâre off centre. But itâs fine.Â

Itâs Monday.
âMidterm results are out Tuesday morning. If you have any questions Iâll be sitting at office hours on Wednesday and Thursday, four to six in the evening. Or you could send me an email, eitherâs fine.â
Dr. Cho isnât here. Something you only found out when the pitt sank in your stomach as Mingyu cleared his throat at the full hour.Â
You want to leave, not caring about how strange itâd look if you did. Not caring about how he would definitely notice if you did. You want him to shut up, to stop talking, for anything to halt the way his voice infiltrates your entire being, talking about things you donât understand but more familiar than anything else.Â
Mingyuâs voice is hoarse, and you loathe the way you can tell the difference.Â

Itâs Tuesday.
Midterm Results for Statistics in Psychological Research.
â 92/100

Itâs Wednesday.Â
4:10 PM. Itâs almost too much for you. Almost.Â
The screech of the door is loud, the slam of the handleâs rebound even more so. The room doesnât so much as glance at you at the door, the half full seats preoccupied with more important things.Â
The front desk perks up immediately, eyes shooting towards the door for the nth time that day, like he was expecting someone that never seemed to show up.Â
Itâs ironic, you think, how Mingyu never seemed to notice you walk into the room for the many months youâve walked in just for him. And now, as you walk in fists clenched and jaw set, eyes wild and burning, heâs breaking away from a student to look at the door before you even come into view.Â
âDid you feel bad?â you spit.
âWhat?â he whispers. He seems to come around, glancing back before continuing, âCan we talk? Please.â
âAnswer the question, Mingyu,â you snap. You donât care thereâs a confused student sitting right across from the both of you, his slot interrupted by your barge. âDid you feel so bad you had to give me something I didnât earn?â
Heâs stood up now, half confused. âIs this about the midtermââ
âI did not get a ninety two, I know I didnât,â you grit. âWhatever happened before that stupid paper made sure I wouldnât.â
Mingyu says your name and the sound makes you want to vomit. âWhat makes you think Iâd do something like that?â
âI donât know, maybe because I fucked up because of you?â you announce, louder than before.Â
The world disappeared, your tunnel vision pointed at Mingyuâs face that wears an expression you cannot even begin to read. The unbecoming tears in your eyes are of a type of unadulterated rage youâve felt only a few times before. Your heart is going about a million miles a breath, everything else only triggering an added bout of infuriated tremble in the forefront of your emotions. Nothing makes sense.Â
Mingyu pushes back his chair in silence, stalking over to a large cupboard in the corner of the room. He shuffles around for a minute before returning.Â
Thereâs a packet being thrust into your fists when he reaches you. He does not meet your eyes.Â
A bright red 92/100 marks the front page.
âHere. It was all you, if you canât believe me.â
Itâs a careful mark, unmistakable lines and curves of the nine and the two.Â
Reality is slow to sink in, but for some reason itâs only making you angrier. The paper curls under the pressure of your fingertips. You donât open the packet. You refuse to flick through the pages.Â
Because you know youâve lost.

Itâs Thursday. And itâs full of regret.Â
Thereâs a sickness in you, from that dreaded day, something beyond what affects your body temperature and your energy. Itâs in your mind, flooding the nerves that swim through every crevice and cave of your brain, a physical venom that does the opposite of kill but also the opposite of letting you live.Â
Thereâs a feeling in you, that even if you were to open your mouth, unhinge your jaw, try to scream as loud as your throat would allow, there would be no sound. Something like a horrible dream, that you need to screw your eyes tight shut to fall out of. Except you arenât waking up from this one.Â
In a coffee shop, where Mingyu held your hand in a reassurance you now bleed for, you were sure he was real. Real like some deiform image; too good to be true.Â
In your bed, dry tears on your face, midterm packet sifted through that showed you absolutely everything that you did right, thanks to him. He feels too real. Real like a cloud of obsidian that follows you everywhere, like the sad thatâs been sleeping with you every night.Â
If there was a way to hate someone more than a human limit, youâve crossed it with the resentment youâve now fostered for yourself.Â
Barging into office hours like that, accusing him on a basis of nothing but your own dangerously stewed thoughts. If there was a hope of salvaged parts, you took a hammer to it in disregard; tearing it to ribbons that lay at your feet.Â

Itâs Friday.
At least it was. It bled into Saturday before you realised the 3:23 AM on the dial.Â
Two weeks of no help and you already feel lightyears behind. The hour is getting to you, and you feel the frustration pool into tears, that turn into full fledged sobs. Youâre crying over Bayesian inference and itâs somehow more pressing than any other emotion youâve ever felt.Â
Impossible numbers on your data sheets taunt you, not a single reference to if it was a button you clicked wrong or if you were playing a foolâs game altogether.Â
Ding! You pick up your phone, the weight of it is enough gravity to pull you back to earth.Â
[Mingyu]: switch to bF10Â
[Mingyu]: youâve been pulling numbers from bF01
Itâs immediate the way your eyes dart towards your lit screen, clicking off tables to get to the drop down menu you need. And there on the left, two tiny buttons, one clicked on bF01.Â
With shaking fingers, you move your cursor to hover over the tiny bF10, anticipating. You click. It takes a moment for the numbers to change, but they do. The nominal values turn into something you can actually work with.Â
Something akin to a tut leaves you, hidden in the breath of another sob. Itâs stupid, unreasonable, absurd. Your fingers hover over your phone, shaking as tears drop onto the screen, faster than before.Â
Do you not miss me?
Do you not want me around?
Talk to me
I miss you
Please talk to me
âI couldnâtâcanâtâstand listening to someone spew nonsense when I know itâs not true.â
Mingyu is a product of his personality. You can only imagine heâs helped because he saw you struggling in class, heard from someone else, or perhaps, he just knew the very thing youâd make blunders out of.Â
The reasons come to you, that Mingyu is a product of his personality. Then why does it hurt? Why does it feel like the knifeâs twisted a full 360, that despite the way you accused him of the thing that would strip him of everything heâs bruised himself for, he helps you. The very thing that caused this rift in the first place.Â
Thereâs a reason for that, and it is again, that Mingyu is a product of his personality.Â

Itâs Saturday.Â
Perhaps you relied on your olfactory senses to remain calm, because you always knew you could count on a coffee shop to forever and always smell the same.Â
The universe seems to want to ruin that for you too.Â
âLatte, please,â you voice. âIced.â
âWe have a one plus one for the week! Would you like to receive another latte?â The lady taking your order looks no older than 17, a pep in her voice.Â
âUm, no thank you. Just one, please.â
She looks taken aback, a reasonable reaction to anyone turning down a free drink. But you couldnât bring yourself to walk home with two cups in hand.Â
Youâre plucking a napkin from the pickup counter when you hear his name.Â
â...that he manipulated her grade because they were hooking up.âÂ
âHe has time to hook up?â
âI remember hearing about that! She barged in during office hours and asked why he fixed her grade or something.âÂ
âA ninety two? In that class? Oh, they were definitely fooling around with each other.â
âWhatever, at least we know heâll entertain you if he likes you enough. Iâm just glad those two are over so I can swoop in.â
Thereâs an eruption of giggles. You press your head down further.Â
âUnless he flirts in variables.â
âAll is forgiven when youâre born with a face like that.âÂ
Another explosion of giddy laughter, through which your drink is slid across the counter towards you, like it was waiting for you to hear the damning evidence before you could leave. You grab it anyway, grip tighter than usual.Â
Turning around, your eyes search, finding a group of people that sit in smiles and in various states of trust-falls.Â
There she is, the girl you sat with on the first day you attended office hours, the one with the glitter gel pen doodles on her notes and her blatant fawns over the TA you slipped under just as easily.Â
She locks eyes with you and her face falls, eyes widening the slightest bit in recognition.Â
Pressing your lips into a smile, you hope it doesnât look as menacing as you feel. You donât wait for a response before you walk out the large glass doors.

Itâs Sunday.
It seems every sip of water youâve taken during the week has been used up in all the tears youâve seemed to be shedding. By the bucketload.
Alas, even blurry and puffy eyed, you pour over statistical formulas anyway, running on no energy and all antagonism. Itâs another tutorial sheet left incomplete, a single question taking a pour that lasts in at least an hour of struggle.Â
Reading the same question for the nth time, your palms press into your temples as you stare lasers into the paper, like the revelation would come to you if you stared it down hard enough. It doesnât make sense, the commands youâve toggled on and off identical to the instructions on the page.Â
Hence the question begs why the data was coming out like someone pressed the ultimate on a number generator.Â
With a heat of unreasonable embarrassment, you find yourself checking your selection in one of the drop down menus, switching to bF01 and back just to see the difference. It does nothing to help, and you canât help but feel a little relieved it wasnât that particular snag.Â
The library is as silent as it could possibly be on a Sunday morning, near empty as you occupy the mostly vacant seats. The librarian is having her own day off, as you could swear sheâs playing computer games behind the counter instead of actual work.Â
The only noise in the room is your own breathing, and that seems to be enough to mess with your concentration. Youâre going cross eyed staring at the page for so long, the words doubling and disappearing before going back to normal.Â
Bayesian inferenceâŚz scoresâŚnull hypothesisâŚ
Wait.Â
Itâs like you can see it in front of your eyes right now, the scribble of someone elseâs dark blue on your notes.
no null hypothesis in bayesian approach
Bayesian approaches donât use null hypotheses. And z scores are inâŚ
âOh my god, this is a t test,â you whisper to yourself in disbelief. Immediately, youâre scrambling to shake your laptop out of its sleep, switching over to a t test to redo everything, following the instructions on the same data set.Â
And there it wasâŚa clear 0.067 under the p value.Â
In a moment of questioning, you laugh out a breathy sound, the absurdity of it all becoming too real. T tests were the first thing you learned, the foundation to all your statistical knowledge. Coming so far, and it took you days to realise the instructions under a Bayesian approach were for a different realm entirely.Â
It was stupid of you. But in this difficult aftermath you canât help but feel victorious. Laughing to yourself quietly in this empty library.Â
When the initial adrenaline fades and youâve double, triple checked to ensure you were right, you can only stare at the tiny mail button in your shortcuts on the screen. It was clearly an error, one that was given out to nearly a hundred students.Â
The first step was clicking, your inbox coming to life as you drift towards the big blue button with the readily available NEW MAIL. So you click.Â
Thereâs an attached file in the email you draft.Â
The tutorial paper has titled t test instructions as a Bayesian approach. Just wanted to point it out and ask if I could receive a corrected version.Â
Regards, YN
Itâs almost like youâre trying to remember how it feels like when you type an experimental m in the To bar. His name pops up immediately, email address typed out in full, full name clear on top as a regular contact.Â
You donât need a suggestion to remember, his email came easier to you than your own.Â
But you donât email him, backspacing till itâs empty once again.Â
Dr. Choâs email sits in that place instead, a first for you.Â
SEND.
You donât expect him to reply on a Sunday, in fact, you arenât sure if heâs going to respond at all. Youâve already shut your laptop, half out of your seat in an attempt to pack up. Youâre forced to consider.Â
Would it be terrible to go back and cc him as well?Â
A spiteful part of you might find joy in correcting him for a change. The rational part of you wants to actually finish the tutorial before tomorrowâs class when youâd have to tackle another beast for the rest of the week.Â
Sitting back down, you move without thinking. Your mind is still cooking up possibilities as you swing your screen open once again, still weighing as you click back into your inbox.Â
Thereâs a new email in your sent box after youâre done, a copy of the one you sent your professor, the same attachment and the same question; word for word. The only difference, a more familiar name in the address bar.Â
Before you can chicken out, you slam your laptop shut for the actual last time, shoving everything into your bag before the speeding thoughts can infiltrate your mind's barrier. Youâre out the door before you know it, ready to be done with this.Â
Youâre afraid if you put a hand to your stomach itâd be met with kicks and punches, especially with the way you feel the aggressive cartwheels slashing away at your insides. The butterflies are making it to the end of your food pipe, and you briefly wonder if you need to break into a sprint to make it to a safe throwing up zone. Your entire being jolts as you feel a buzz in your hands, a loud click that signifies a new email in your inbox.Â
Right there, in the middle of the sidewalk, you stop.Â
The grip you have on your phone is unyielding, your fingers beginning to hurt from the pressure. Thereâs no way to tell if youâre shaking or not, but you bring your phone to your face anyway. The screen flips on, a lone notification on the screen.Â
RE: Tutorial Error from Kim Mingyu
It couldnât have been more than ten minutes since you sent that email, the library still in sight from where you stand. At the same time, itâs almost funny you expected any different from him.Â
The kicks and punches in your stomach halt, the cartwheels have calmed, the butterflies have fallen asleep. The grip on your phone has loosened, and itâs like every nerve in your body went from on fire to serenity in a whiplash inducing shift.Â
Clicking on the notification, the email opens.Â
Noted. I have another tutorial sheet for you if you want it. Iâll be in the room where office hours are held for the rest of the morning.
Kim Mingyu, T.A.
There was no way he didnât have a softcopy he could send you in less than a minute, and youâre sure he knew youâd realise that too. You should scoff, be upset, roll your eyes.Â
But instead, you find your feet making a 180, turning around to go right back to where you came from. You walk, eyes still half trained on the email, reading and rereading as you walk back onto campus, towards the building youâd once considered a second home.Â
You walk, and walk and walk, in through the doors, up the stairs and then another set of them, you take a left and look up. The hallway is empty, the door on the right coming into view as you slow your steps significantly.Â
Closer and closer, you realise the light surrounding it is brighter than usual. The door is open, and you can see the empty rows of tables and chairs, set neatly against one another. Itâs strange, youâve never seen it wide open before.Â
Walking even closer, you can see the beginnings of the professorâs desk come into view, and it only takes you one more step forward.Â
Standing in the doorway now, you find yourself in the direct path of the sun that pours in through the open windows. Itâs warm, but just enough to combat the cooling weather.Â
The desk up front is occupied, as it always is.Â
Mingyu is only in a t-shirt and trousers, glasses perched on his nose as he scrawls away on the paper in front of him. His laptop is turned on, screen facing the door where you stand, his inbox open and available even on the weekend.Â
It wasnât that you were waiting for him to notice, but you found yourself inadvertently taking your time looking at him. Every other situation, youâd done your absolute best to avoid your eyes grazing over him at all costs, hardly drifting over his form before flitting away. You never did it on purpose, but it was more like you were unconsciously protecting yourself.
 Like looking at him would only make the ache in your heart worse.
If that was the case, you wouldâve been right. Thereâs a tug in your chest, and in that moment, it all comes flooding in like a gate destroyed.Â
Mingyu looks up and sees you in the doorway, standing immobile. He sets his pen down, taking his glasses off. Thereâs the smallest hint of a smile on his face as he greets you, ââMorning.â
You take it as your cue to move forward, stepping foot into the patch of sun slowly. ââMorning.â
You reach the desk, standing in front of him, the only thing blocking you being the littered table with files, papers and stationary; the trench between you both.Â
Itâs so silent it tears at your insides, gripping the strap of your bag to have something to do.Â
âI, uh, double checked when I saw the email. You were right, nobody noticed in class either.â Thereâs an airiness in his voice, like he might be struggling just as much as you are right now.Â
He clears his throat when you donât respond, looking back down at his workspace like he was looking for something. He finds a paper from some stack, handing it over to you.Â
âThanks,â you hoarse. Itâs the same tutorial you had, except the instructions had been crossed out, replaced by a list of handwritten instructions instead, detailed in their annotation. You recognise it, because of course youâd recognise his handwriting.Â
âI didnât have time to print one out right now. Iâll probably send a corrected copy to everyone tonight,â he explains.Â
âThatâs alright.â You look up, lips pressed together, eyebrows forced into a regular position on your face. Nodding, you thank him once again. âThanks again. IâllâŚget going.âÂ
Every fibre in your body screams at you to turn back around, hollering profanities at your inability to deal with this. Youâre already halfway to the door though, and your prideâs already deemed it too late.Â
Please stop me, please stop me, please stop me, please just say something and stop meâ
There it is. Your name, from his mouth, in his beautiful voice.Â
Turning back around is the easiest thing youâve ever done.Â
Mingyu has stood up from his seat, out from behind the desk. He looks like he wasnât expecting you to turn back. âCan we talk?âÂ
And then heâs pulling out the chair he was sitting on, presenting it like a piece offering. If you heard correctly, you couldâve sworn you heard his voice break the slightest bit when he pressed, âPlease?â
So there you were, in a position all too familiar as you sit across from the man thatâs haunted you for the past weeks, trying to keep your chest from falling in.Â
âI guess I should start with an apology,â heâs fidgeting with his own fingers. âI donât need to give you excuses about stress or exhaustion becauseâŚâ
He closes his eyes, trying to find the words. âI didnât mean to lash out at you. You were only trying to help and I was too preoccupied with myself to notice. Iâm sorry I spoke to you like that when you didnât deserve it.âÂ
For about the millionth time, you realise youâre tearing up again. He continues. âAnd thenâŚright before the midterm too. You were right, I did feel horrible. But I swear that grade was all you, I didnât touch those numbers.â
He really didnât, because the papers he had thrust into your hands on that fateful day in this very room proved that you earned that mark. You wince regardless.
âI thought I could apologise before the exam started but I couldnât find you, and then you were gone right after. I didnât text or call because I was sure Iâd fucked it all up.âÂ
âIâm sorry too. For barging in in front of everyone and basically accusing you. I wasnât thinking straight.â You look up from your lap, wet lashes and all. âI really hope you didnât get into any trouble.âÂ
âIâno, I didnât.â
âAre you sure? Becauseââ
âI promise I didnât.â He locked eyes with you when he said that, hoping youâd believe him. You nod slowly.Â
âIt wasnât even that bad, what you said,â you sniffled.Â
He scoffs at that, âIâd beg to differ.â
âI wouldâve gotten over it,â you continue, bracing yourself to admit to something youâve had trouble admitting to yourself. âI shouldâve gotten over it. I donât know why it hurt so much, why watching you walk out felt so horrible. But I havenât been acting like normal ever since, and Iâm sorry for stretching this whole fiasco out into something that didnât need to turn intoâŚthis!â
âYou were hurt because I hurt you.â
âPeople have said worse things to me. And you were practically a zombie, I shouldâve just left it for another time. It was a little bit my fault too. ButâŚyeah.â
Thereâs a silence as you try to remind yourself to breathe. You speak up again. âI just want us to go back to normal. Iâve missed you. Alot.â
âMe too. The go back to normal bit. And theâŚmissed you bit.â
Mingyuâs half smiling when you look up, biting your lip hard as you try to keep a smile of your own at bay. âIâd thought if I gave up and admitted I was struggling that day, thatâd be admitting defeat. That youâd think IâŚcouldnât do it.âÂ
Why on earth do you care so much? It rings in your ears.Â
You sound light when you say it though, knowing now it wasnât what he meant.âSince when are we on caring terms?âÂ
Mingyu cringes. "We are. I am, at least, if you aren't anymore, which is fine. I care about you. A lot."
Itâs hard to not let out a laugh. He looks half constipated as he tries to navigate his words.Â
âOh well Iâd hope youâd care, since youâre my TA and all.â
âNot in a TA way.â
âTutor way.â
âUm.â
âFriend way? A human way?âÂ
âNo.â
You both know youâre being obtuse on purpose, and you arenât sure why. Maybe you just like to watch him squirm.Â
âYou know what?â he rasps.Â
âWhat?â
Your answer comes in the form of Mingyu lurching to grab the legs of your chair, pulling the wheels to crash into him where he sits. Youâre not expecting it, the clashing legs causing you to swerve forward, hands on Mingyuâs lap.Â
And then his hand is on the back of your neck, and his lips placed on your own.Â
Youâre stiff as a board, brain computing the fact that Mingyu is kissing you in a classroom.Â
Itâs short, hardly a few moments before he pulls away. âDoes that clear things up?â
Thereâs nothing you can do but blink at him, the reality of it all settles in. âHm.â
He laughs at your half dazed state. Itâs a purely instinctual part of you that speaks after this. âMaybe one more time. To make sure.â
Mingyu doesnât even wait to laugh again as he wastes no time, putting his mouth on yours properly this time. Thereâs more of a drive in you this time, moving your mouth against his and he keeps your head close.Â
The ecstasy is slow but sure to build in your stomach. Mingyu is kissing you. Mingyu is sitting with you and kissing you so good youâre already half faint.Â
His mouth tastes like coffee and remnants of berry, a combination you canât believe you could enjoy this much. Licking into his mouth, you let your tongue drag over his, like the tactile would convince you this wasnât some too vivid fever dream.Â
He pulls away for a moment, but hardly so as his lips remain pressed onto yours.Â
âFor the record,â he pants. âI love that you care. And I hope youâll keep caring. Because I donât think I can handle it if you walk away after this.â
Mouth back on his own, you decide thereâs only one way to convince him you werenât going anywhere without dragging him with you.Â

MINGYU'S APARTMENT IS CLEANER than you expected. You arenât sure what you were expecting, perhaps more mad scientist than anything else. But the most you find is a mug and plate in the sink, and a moderately crowded study desk, which is to be expected.Â
Mingyu decided to abandon his work for the day to spend it with you, to which you contest that it was Sunday anyway. His response is making you change into something comfortable of his so you could laze on his couch.Â
Like you would run away if he didnât, Mingyu keeps his arms around you in a tight hold, fingers curling around your shoulders as you lay on top of him. Your head rests directly over his heart, his cheek and lips taking turns to occupy the top of your head. Â
You fill him in on everything, and realise the most eventful weeks youâve spent were actually quite uneventful in hindsight. He feels up your cheek and forehead when you tell him you got sick at one point, to which you have to reassure him it was either something going around or stress that you subjected on yourself.Â
âI went to a frat party,â Mingyu mumbles into your forehead. âFor Halloween.â
The information has you shifting to look up at him in bewilderment, âYou went to a frat party?â
He snorts, âDressed up for it too.â
âOh my god,â you voice in mild horror. âDo I wanna know?âÂ
âWonwoo and I matched,â he hums as he pulls out his phone, scrolling his gallery to look for pictures. âI was Mario, he was Luigi.â
âHow adorable.â
He only gives you a look and shoves the phone in your face. By some grace of god they arenât wearing moustaches, but the distinct red and green outfits are enough to give you enough recognition.Â
âThing 1 and Thing 2 were also possible contenders,â he informs.Â
âThat mightâve been a little better.â
âWhatâs wrong with Mario?â he asks sharply.
âNothing. But I do hope you werenât sporting an Italian accent throughout that.âÂ
âI was,â he pushes. âA horrible one too.â
You give him the satisfaction of an eye roll.Â
âYou couldâve gone as Peach. We couldâve matched.âÂ
âI donât know if Iâd wanna wear any available Peach costumes during Halloween time.â You crinkle your nose as you think of all the racy costumes that unearth every October.Â
âMaybe in private,â he says with an insufferable smile on his face.Â
Placing your hands flat on his chest, you rest your chin and look up at him. âIâm not sure I want to interrupt whatever you two have going on.âÂ
âWho?â
âYou and Wonwoo, youâre practically married.â
Mingyu laughs out loud, and you can feel the rumble in his chest against your hands, his body moving against your own thatâs stuck to him. âNot with whatever he has going on with his girl.â
âOh right,â you frown in remembrance. âWhat happened to not understanding how he does it?âÂ
âHm?â
âHeâs a TA too. Probably just as busy as you. You said you didnât know how he could juggle a relationship and his job at the same time.â
His eyes spark in remembrance, pausing for a moment. âI may owe him an apology.â
âDo you?â
Mingyu frowns, âActually no I donât. I donât think he and his lady are doing too well right now. Heâs been insufferable lately.â
âIs it because of the TA-ing?â
âI never know with those two,â he sighs.
Thereâs silence once again, in the midst of which Mingyu leans over to kiss you a few times, soft and lingering. Like heâs trying to familiarise himself with the shape of your mouth, the tactile feeling of kissing you.Â
âDo youâŚknow about us?â Thereâs hesitancy in the way you ask. But you canât help but ask anyway.
Mingyu thinks for a moment, and it has your heart beating out of your chest. âI know that I want us to be concrete. That I wanna work around whatever life throws at us. You can decide what to call it, but I know Iâm in it for the long run.â
âIâm glad youâre smarter than your husband,â you smile.
He only rolls his eyes, âHeâs only good at one kind of chemistry.âÂ
âDâyou think theyâll be okay?â
âOh yeah,â he assures. âTheyâre just going through aâŚrough patch.â
âLike we did?â
âIf youâre asking me, Iâd say theyâre being a little more stupid about it.â
The snort that leaves you is unanimous with his own. He continues, âTheyâll be okay though.â
âI hope so. Iâd like to go on double dates with my boyfriendâs husbandâs girlfriend.â You start giggling in the middle of your sentence, too ridiculous even for you to voice.Â
âThis is getting weird,â Mingyu breathes.Â
You only hum against his mouth, âDo I have to take your husband's blessing before we can move forward?â
âFor fuckâs sake.âÂ
Youâre both laughing again, a sound that comes from your stomachs, true and uncontrollable. For a moment, you canât help but be conscious of how light you feel, how happy you feel with his scent infiltrating your nostrils, his presence known where his fingertips touch you.Â
âI did the sticky note thing again too,â Mingyu says into the silence, and thereâs nothing you can do to stop the fit of giggles that erupt all over again.Â
âSaid something worse this time,â he continues as you laugh into his chest. âAccept that youâll die alone or some other shit like that.âÂ
Thereâs comfort in this moment. In your giggles and in your tears, in his voice and in his affection. His lips are another sanctuary youâve found, and perhaps even another way to make your dreaded latch click.Â
Nose nuzzled in his cheek, the feeling of his skin so soft against yours, fingers at his chin where a slight stubble grows, you relax in ways you cannot comprehend.Â

MINGYU'S LIPS BECOME A feeling youâve grown dangerously accustomed to.Â
It isnât that he has them on you too much, regardless of what an outsider might suggest; to you they simply arenât on you enough.Â
The following Monday went as usual, for you anyway. You werenât avoiding Mingyu this time, and you were grateful for it. It was two hours of following him with your eyes as he darted around the room. You could hardly constitute it as not paying attention when Dr. Cho was preoccupied with explaining every reason he hates JASP over SPSS, but also ultimately, hates them both.Â
You donât even notice his loud outfit (overalls and a neon green sweater underneath), happy to watch Mingyu flit about and whisper incoherent explanations to students.Â
The tutorial paper is barely looked at by you, because you know your boyfriend will be happy to help you out later at his place.Â
Youâre barely through the door that night when he gets a hold of you, tight grip across your waist as youâre catapulted into his arms, door slammed shut behind you.Â
Bag still on your shoulders and your shoes still on, Mingyuâs slammed his mouth onto yours before you can take a proper breath. You stumble, squealing through the kiss as you realise you arenât escaping the iron grip heâs got on your face.Â
Somehow between it all, you manage to slip your bag off to let it drop to the floor of his doorway, shoes kicked off one after the other as he leads you inside, littering the way.Â
âYou arenât actually paying attention in class anyway,â he breathes against your mouth before kissing you again. âSo why donât you sit in the back where you donât distract me.â
âWho says Iâm not paying attention.â You open your as your back lands on the couch, looking at him as he looms overhead.Â
âYouâre paying attention to me.â
âIt was in my job description when I signed up for the girlfriend position.â
Heâs all over you now, hands at your sides, mouth underneath your earlobes as he husks, âWas letting me take you in front of the entire class also a clause? Because if this goes on I might have to take up on that.â
If you didnât know any better you wouldâve assumed heâd been possessed, everything about his behaviour screaming the opposite of the well behaved, restrained man youâve been accustomed to. The fact that heâs whispering directly into your ears isnât helping either, a conspicuous shiver dragging across your spine.Â
It lands with precision, right at your core. Youâre too hot to tell, but there isnât a doubt youâve begun to pool.Â
Thereâs a ding in the background.Â
Heâs suckling underneath your ear, his hands roaming in ways that would smear your reputation altogether.Â
Another ding.Â
Heâs reached your mouth once again, groping your right breast lightly. Like heâs testing the waters.
Ding.Â
Mingyu makes a noise of annoyance, the other hand trailing underneath your shirt.Â
His ringtone blares throughout the room, whoever the caller was having reached witâs end.Â
âGyuâŚâ you whisper.Â
âIgnore it,â he growls. The ringing has stopped.Â
He ducks underneath to kiss at your stomach, lifting your shirt oh so slowly. He goes higher, and higher and higher, leaving a trail of kisses at the skin, taking deep breaths as he drags his mouth over your torso.Â
His phone begins to ring again.Â
Your head is spinning, your senses overcome. If you werenât sure before, the air of wetness between your legs is definitely obvious now.Â
He brings a hand to your centre, pushing inwards at your jean clad core. You exhale sharply yet shakily.Â
The ringing stops.Â
Mingyu makes a gumbled sound that you canât quite make out, too preoccupied with the way your shirt is now up past your bra, at which Mingyu has taken to leaving open mouthed kisses to your cleavage.Â
Thereâs a ding.Â
âMingyu, I really thinkââ
His phone begins to ring again.Â
âOh for fuckâs sake,â he curses, rearing his head like an interrupted animal, wet mouthed and bleary eyed. He looks at his buzzing phone on the floor in an accusatory glare, like he wants to chuck it out the window and go right back to burrowing into your chest.Â
âYou should answer.âÂ
He looks irritated as he takes his phone in his hands, and you find a flash of Dr. Choâs name on the screen. âItâs eleven Oâclock.âÂ
âIt might be important.â
âThe last time he did this he asked where his peacock feather pen was,â he grunts as he silences his phone.Â
You laugh, running a soothing hand through Mingyuâs hair, a tiny attempt to calm him down. Pulling your shirt down, you attempt to sit up.Â
Mingyu makes a noise of denial, attempting to stick his face into your now clothed chest, knocking you back down, âNooooo, Iâm gonna ignore him.â
âHeâs not going to leave you alone,â you sing quietly, running your nails across his scalp lightly, holding his head to your chest. You place your cheek on his head, playing with his ear.Â
As if to prove your point, Mingyuâs phone begins to ring again, and he groans at the prospect.Â
âGo on.â
He swipes to answer it. A loud sigh and then a tired, âHello?â
His volume is bumped up enough for you to make out whatâs being said on the other line. âWhere have you been?â
âItâs nearly eleven, sir. I was in bed.â
âMy flash drive wonât open up on my computer.â
You have to stifle a snort.Â
âIs itâŚplugged in?â
âOf course it is, Iâm not an idiot.â
âIs it showing up on your files?â
âDiskâŚis notâŚformatted.â
âErm, it might be corrupted.â
âHow did that happen?â
âDid you download something off the internet onto it?â
âHardly matters, I need the attendance sheet on it!â
Your fingers are massaging Mingyuâs temples as you feel him tense on top of you.Â
âYour attendance sheet is on the teacherâs portal,â Mingyu grits before adding, âsir.â
â...I have other things on there too.â
Mingyu exhales ever so quietly and you tighten your hold on him a smidge. âThis sounds like something tech support could help with.â
âWhy canât you help?â he asks sharply.Â
âIâŚI donât know how, sir.â
Thereâs a noise of indignation from the other end, and you canât help but keep from laughing.Â
Mingyu sighs into the phone, this time doing nothing to hide it. âIâll take it to tech support for you tomorrow. And Iâll send you a direct link for the attendance sheet for Monday and Tuesdayâs classes.â
The line beeps shut. Mingyu brings the phone for you both to see the professorâs hung up as soon as the words left Mingyuâs mouth.Â
âWow,â you whisper into the silence, the weight of Mingyuâs head heavier on your chest. âNot even a thank you.â
âAbsent father behaviour,â Mingyu grumbles as he moves his face to burrow into your shirt.Â
Itâs a bad joke, but you laugh anyway.Â
âWill I be an asshole if I say Iâm not in the mood anymore?â he murmurs.Â
âAbsolutely not. Everything sucked right back in the minute I heard his voice on the line.â
âGross,â he comments, but heâs laughing too.Â
âShould we call it a night?â he asks, rearing his head.Â
Nodding, you rise with him. By the time youâve reached the bedroom, youâve already begun taking off your accessories, fiddling with your bracelet as you voice.Â
âI need a shower.â
Mingyu throws you a towel and a t-shirt, which you catch and move towards the bathroom. Halfway through the door, you sneak a look at him fiddling with his belt.Â
âDo you wanna come in too?âÂ
Mingyu looks at you peering through the door frame. Youâve never seen anyone leap across the room as quickly as in that moment.Â

THE FOLLOWING DAYS WERE just as eventful as that phone call, Mingyu running around as the midterm low passed and the line creeped up towards finals season.Â
Perhaps it was better that you stopped attending office hours, because the room seems to become increasingly packed as the days progressed.Â
You only ever saw Mingyu in the wee hours of the night at his place, where he begged you to camp out till the end of the semester so he âdoesnât move to insanityâ. It might even be better for you, going about your day as usual, without the usual added distraction of a partner.
Coming home to him was easier, where he could clear up your doubts while in ratty pyjamas and starfished across the bed, where you could find solace in Mingyuâs chest without prying eyes when the information became like filling an already stuffed junk drawer.Â
It was a Friday night, youâre alone at Mingyuâs place sitting cross legged on the floor. The table in front of you is pouring over the final question of this weekâs tutorial paper, everything seemingly whizzing right past the top of your head.Â
Despite that, as Mingyu stumbles inside past eleven, you know you shouldnât ask him for a thing.Â
Tired was a look on Mingyu youâd gotten quite used to, so youâve learned to not comment and simply let him fall into the couch cushions with all his weight.Â
His face is parallel to yours as he closes his eyes with a light groan in greeting. Moving forward, you kiss the flutter of his eyelids softly, down to the apple of his cheeks, the tip of his nose, the corner of his mouth.Â
Your fingers run through his tangled and distressed hair as he mumbles against your mouth. âDid you finish the tutorial paper?â
You huff in mild annoyance, that despite his state he still thinks about work. âNot yet. One last question and Iâm done.â
He hums and waits a moment before reopening his eyes. With a loud groan heâs pushing himself off the couch, sliding off of it to sit with you on the uncomfortable floor. âAlright, letâs get this over with.â
âI can figure it out myself, Gyu.â
âYou wouldâve been done by now if you could,â he answers. Itâs annoying that he says it but heâs also right.Â
Mingyu holds the paper a mere inch from his eyes, the sight almost comical if he also didnât look an inch from passing out.Â
He mumbles the question as he reads, âItâs nothing, just worded weird. Toggle this off and move this to mixed factors and youâre done.â
The toggles are done for you, and Mingyu takes the liberty crossing he question off with a pen he finds on the table.Â
âDid you get everything else?â he asks in earnest.Â
âHm? I think so.âÂ
âGood.â And then heâs throwing his head back to rest it on the couch cushions behind him, breathing slowly.Â
Heâs in a navy sweater, collar of his undershirt peeking through the top. Your gaze leads up further, to the exposed area of his throatâclean, tan and naked. You realise this might not be a good time, but itâs only natural your mind cooks up other ways to translate your helplessness as you watch your boyfriend push himself to the brink. Release is never a bad idea.Â
Besides, itâs a Friday night. No reason to not.Â
âGyu,â you shuffle closer.Â
Lolling his head to look over at you, he answers in a small voice, âYeah?âÂ
You put on the guiltiest face you can muster, complete with darting eyes and fidgeting fingers. âDâyou thinkâŚdâyou think you can go over post hoc tests again?â
âPost hoc?â He furrowed his eyebrows. You bite the inside of your cheek, having blurted the first plausible model you could think of to ask him. Itâs an older bit of the syllabus, something you should already be well versed in.Â
Not that you care what he thinks right now, heâd figure out why you were asking anyway.Â
âPost hoc, um,â he rubs a hand over his face as if to jog his memory.Â
Shifting forward, you plaster you front onto his side. He thinks nothing of it.Â
âAnalysis tool after youâve already run the data,â he begins.Â
Placing your chin on his shoulder, you let your nose nuzzle against his cheek. Trailing up, your lips find the shell of his ear.Â
âResults have to beâŚthey have to beâŚâ He falters when your hand reaches his front, running across the expanse of his clothes stomach, nails digging ever so slightly as you reach his abdomen. You continue to place open mouthed kisses at the space of neck you can reach.Â
âHm? Has to be what?â
âStatistically significant,â he breathes when your palms reach the tops of his thighs. âTo run a post hoc test.â
His trousers are less barrier inducing than regular jeans, something youâre both grateful for as you begin to palm his clothed bulge. âResults of what, baby?â
âFor the love ofââ
âGo on,â you whisper in his ear. âPlease.â
One flick and his trousers are unbutton, pulling them aside as the zipper pulls open. You're pushing down his boxers when he answers you. âANOVA.âÂ
âWhatâs that again?â
âYou little shit.â
You move your mouth forward to kiss him.
âAnalysis of variance.âÂ
You hum against the column of his throat at that, his half hard member in your hands. Light touches, thatâs all they are, running the pads of your fingers across the pulsing length, coaxing him into full length.Â
âWhatâs it for though? We already got our results.â Bending forward, you stick your tongue to kitten lick at his tip. Mingyu hisses, hips shifting. Your tongue swirls around the tip, pushing into the skin on the head where heâs most sensitive.Â
âUgh, fuck, for um,â he falters as you begin to suck at his head, tongue running over each hollow of your cheeks.Â
âForâŚforâŚâ His chest is moving up and down in quick breathes, every sound from his mouth coming from a deep rumble in his stomach.Â
Letting go of his cock, you continue to pump him with your hand as you gaze up at him from your position. âFor? Keep talking, baby.â
âForâŚTo identify groups,â he grunts out. He lets out a louder moan when you place your mouth back on him, going past his tip and taking as much as you can of him into your mouth. âIdentifyâŚthe differences, shit, hmph.â
He takes a loud breath before speeding through it again, âIdentify which groups actually differ, oh my god.â
The bit of him that you canât fit on your mouth is being pumped by your hands, fingers pushing into him like you were trying to indent them on the base of his cock. A glance upwards and you find his head thrown back, hands coming to tangle in your hair. His thumb caresses the side of your cheek.
âHow many groups?â you ask, before diving back in.Â
âThree,â he chokes out. âThree or more, oh Iâm gonna cum, fuck donât stop, holy shit.â
Both of his hands are at your head, guiding you as you suck him harder, faster, more tongue digging into his slit. You hum against his dick on purpose, making sure itâs coarse enough to get the reaction you want.Â
You succeed, because immediately after you hear Mingyu rip out the loudest moan youâve ever heard, his grip on your strands harder than ever. He cums into your mouth, hips stuttering as you place your entire weight on him to keep him in place.Â
You let some of it dribble out your mouth and back over his softening dick like a hot coating, sucking him through shooting spurts of cum that land on your tongue.Â
When you emerge from underneath, Mingyu looks like he got the soul sucked out of him; eyes closed, stuttered breaths raking through his entire body, a light sheen of the beginnings of sweat that glisten in the low light of the room.Â
Reaching for the tissue box and water bottle on the table, you soak the napkins and bring them to clean him up. He whines when the cold tissues touch him where heâs most sensitive right now, you want to kiss him but account for the cum that is actively stuck to the walls of your mouth.Â
You leave for a few minutes, much to Mingyuâs hoarse protests. Heâs almost on all fours, hands on the floors as you promise to be back. By the time youâve hauled his tired ass into bed, youâre just as ready to knock out as the half asleep man beside you.Â
Mingyuâs face is plastered into your neck, arms and legs thrown over your form as he hugs you close to him.Â
âI might love you,â he says into the darkness. A secret, just for you and the walls to hear.Â
You hide the way your heart absolutely leaps, conceal the way your hands tighten around his form into an affectionate caress, hold your breath to prevent the inevitable hitch.Â
I might love you too.Â
You hide that as well. For now.Â
Smiling into the skin of his temples, you sigh.
âFeel free.â

[Mingyu]: class ended earlyÂ
[Mingyu]: be there in 5Â
[You]: ???
[You]: wdym ended early
[You]: kim did u end class early to come home
Your response comes in the form of the front door lock jiggling loudly. Youâd stayed the night at his place, knowing you didnât have anything to do but study by yourself. Sickly as you were, you doubt you could sit through two hours of even more statistics.Â
Heâd left you in bed with a kiss, needing to be extra early since Dr. Cho decided to dump the last crucial few weeks leading up to finals season entirely on his TA. As much as there was on Mingyuâs already overflowing plate now, you couldnât deny the elated feeling of your attendance being taken care of regardless of whether you show up to class or not.Â
A very real violation, but no one truly notes one skipped student in the midst of hundreds. Besides, the bag under Mingyuâs pretty eyes might be enough for anyone to have mercy and let the supposed mistake slide.
As Mingyu walks into the room, shoes flying and back dumped on the floor, he finds you still half clothed with leftover sleep in your eyes, standing in the middle of the living space like you were lost.Â
He drops his things to come and drown you in his arms, loud kisses all over your face as you talk. âYouâre getting too comfortable with this job.â
âAm I?â
âYes.â
âCanât possibly expect me to teach a bunch of half asleep idiots when my woman is all alone at home, sickly and cold without me.â
You grumble wordlessly as you feel him check your temperature with the back of his hand. âHowâs the congestion?â
âBad,â you respond nasally. âI canât find my Afrin.â
âItâs on the bedside table, baby.â
âNo, itâs not.â
Still wrapped in his hold, Mingyu begins to take steps forward that lead towards the bed, pushing you to walk backwards.
âIâm not awake enough to navigate,â you sniff.
âIâve got you,â he lowtones, pushing backwards slowly.Â
The back of your knees hit the bed and you let yourself fall back into the unmade sheets. You crawl back under the covers as Mingyu navigates between used tissues, water bottles and pills on the bedside table. But no sign of your nasal spray.Â
You have to breathe through your mouth and you hate it, but you send a remark his way anyway. âTold you.â
Mingyu bends down and emerges with a familiar red capped bottle. He stares at you while you stare at it, choosing to simply snatch it from his presenting hands and be done with it.Â
âGood thing I came back early, hm?âÂ
âShut up.â
He leaps over your form to claim the spot in bed right next to you, still fully clothed as he burrows under the covers next to you.
Thereâs nothing flattering about the way you stick the nozzle up your nostrils and sniff hard, but the gleam in your boyfriendâs eyes might as well suggest you were trying to get him to look at you like that.Â
âAre you gonna keep doing this till finals?â you ask throatily, shifting under the covers.Â
âTeaching during class time is just extended office hours, Iâm gonna go insane if I keep going like this. Probably just today. OrâŚonce more if I feel it.â
âDidnât you say you were gonna extend office hours to Fridays too?âÂ
Mingyu moulded himself against you, giving warmth to your shivering body even under thick blankets.Â
It seems throughout the course of your relationship, your time with Mingyu is either spent laying down or in the process of doing so. Not that you mind, youâve found that remaining horizontal was what worked best for someone like Mingyu who seemed to want to fuse with your very being whenever you were together.
âUgh, not this week. Do not have the patience.â
âIâm proud of you,â you say, eyes closed, already on the highway to dreamland.Â
âThank you, I do think Iâve been very brave.â Even while slipping into dreamland, you find the good sense to find his nipple through his sweater and give it a hard pinch. He jerks away in a yelp, clutching his chest.Â
âWhatâs that for?!â
You ignore him and simply run your hand over the area you just attacked. âYouâve gotten better at knowing when to slow down. Iâm proud of you.â
Youâre too far gone to make out what he answers you with, but with the hot breath against your already warm forehead, you decide it's more than enough for you.Â

MINGYU DOES IT FOR the fourth time, but this time round heâs smart enough to not tell you.Â
Itâs the Friday before finals week officially begins, and you remain in your own place for once to crack down on the last bits of syllabus you want to go over, away from your extremely distracting boyfriend.Â
Thereâs a text when you check your phone after a couple hours of hyperfocus, and you narrow your eyes at the notification.Â
Itâs Wonwooâs (actual) girlfriend, and sheâs sent you nothing but a picture of both of your men on Wonwooâs living room floor, thoroughly occupied with the floored expanse of sheets, pillows and cushions.Â
Itâs a pillow fort.
Your boyfriend is building a pillow fort in his not-husbandâs living room mere days before the final exam for the most dreaded course of the semester. All while heâs actively meant to be available for office hours.
You want to laugh. The man that stayed up multiple nights to answer stupid questions in emails, is now less than concerned about the pandemonium that is probably ensuing in the department building. It isnât that youâre upset, because this was what you wanted from him. To learn to take a break when it was needed. But you would also prefer heâd time them a little better.Â
Inevitably, you text him, but not before sending an encouraging text to your girlfriend-in-law for putting up with the both of them all by herself.Â
[You]: where are you
[Mingyu]: where im meant to be?
[You]: office hours?
[Mingyu]: mhm
[You]: are u and ur husband conducting them under a pillow fort in his house
You imagine him sending Wonwooâs girlfriend a betrayed look. Perhaps even throw a frilled throw pillow in her unassuming direction.Â
[Mingyu]: DONT KILL ME
You let him suffer in your silence, clicking your phone off and leaving it somewhere you wonât be tempted to look.Â
Besides, it wasnât long before there was an incessant banging at your door that you ended up needing to get up to open. He looks so timid, the face of an innocent perpetrator that waltzes into your space.Â
âIâm sorry,â he begins, following you to your desk like a lost duckling.Â
âWhatever for?â
âFor lying.âÂ
You snort as you sift through tutorial sheets, âMight wanna take that up to the poor hopeless student that thought you were their last hope.â
Mingyuâs head sinks to your shoulder where you sit at your desk. âGod.â
âHim too.â
In another few moments, his arms have come around to cage you into your desk where youâre sat, hands placed on the table as he towers over the top of your head, mouth to crown.Â
âRumour has it,â he starts.Â
You make a face. âNow youâve joined in on gossip? Maybe I have steered you wrong.â
He ignores you valiantly as his mouth drops lower, down to the beginnings of the tips of your ears. You can smell him. He smells good.Â
âThat a textbook recitation is all it takes to get you all bothered down there.â
Lifting your head from its craned position over your papers, you stare straight ahead. Blank and unassuming.Â
âTake a hike, Kim.â
â...Sorry.â

NO MATTER HOW FAKE annoyed you were at your boyfriend, you cannot possibly credit anyone else for how smooth your finals had gone.Â
Not a single tear, hack or whine. Your meals were on time, your sleep schedule the healthiest itâs been for months. You even managed a movie night break in the midst of it all. A record for you.Â
The very first thing you do after walking out of the exam hall, stretching and sighing, you find Mingyu waiting with nervous eyes.Â
âWell?â he asks, eyes wide and lips pulled into his teeth.Â
You merely grab for his hand and pull him out of the crowded hall and past a few familiar turns.Â
âFor the record I didnât want some of the questions on there,â he yaps as he follows behind your stalks. âHard ones werenât mine. I promise Iâm not a sadist.â
Then, in an un-CCTVâd corner, marked by the broken, empty vending machine, you round up on him. In seconds youâve pulled him down to meet your lips in an eager, full kiss.Â
In the moments your lips remain intact, you can feel all the horrid statistical knowledge youâd gathered over the months slip out the cracks and crevices, relieving you.Â
Mingyu is careful to let you pull away first, eyes sticky to open when you do. Thereâs a smile on your face. âIt went great.â
A strong tug against your waist and youâre suddenly pressed into Mingyuâs all too familiar hold, so everloving tight you can hardly breathe. His lips are smacking and pressing into your skin, all over your face, neck and hands. Anywhere he could possibly reach.Â
There wasnât much he could do standing in a huddled corner at nine in the morning on a Tuesday, where anyone could pass by and question what in the high school was going on. But there was more than enough Mingyu could do behind closed doors.Â
In true Mingyu fashion, heâs begun to grope in every way you love the minute the lock clicks shut of his apartment, every fibre of both of your beings giddy and jumpy, giggles erupting from your tired mouths. You havenât been touched in ages, always too tired to do anything even when you would find the time.Â
It isnât remotely strange that you're wet from only a few kisses and hot breaths against your neck. Although Mingyuâs hands havenât been modest either, already reaching your clothed cunt as you fall into bed.Â
He says it was your reward, for doing so good, his illustrious mouth suctioned onto your naked core, moving and grinding in ways you can more than just appreciate.
His tongue is nothing below made for you, like he knows exactly when to flick his tongue, graze his teeth and all but suck the daylights out of you. Itâs marvellous, even more so as you realise he wonât stop. One, two, three mind blowing orgasms later, your legs still shake around his head as you cry out for him to stop.Â
Not that he was going to listen, as he did not the last fifteen times you tried, simply pushing a finger into your abused hole to chuck you into yet another climax. Youâre sobbing, trembling, sweating; but also half hearted in your attempts to stop him.Â
By the time heâs relented, youâre sure you wonât feel a thing down there for at least a week. If Mingyu will even let you go untouched for that long.Â
But as youâre finally able to catch your long lost breath in bed, and Mingyu has curled up right beside you, like he always does, you let the finality of it all sink in. You were done. And so was he. And you could now begin to experience a Mingyu that wasnât exhausted, stressed or tired. Even now, the long indented layers of fatigue begin to melt away, revealing a less strained man.Â
Mingyu was beautiful either way.Â
âAre you okay?â he asks you, his fingers tracing your features.Â
The pads of his fingers glide across your eyelids, down the slope of your nose, tracing the outline of your lips. You kiss his fingers as they reach you there, hand coming up to hold his wrists. You kiss the tips of his fingers, down to the palm of his hand. Eyes closed, you keep your lips there.Â
âMore than okay,â you mumble.Â
âGood. Thought I lost you there.â
Stretching unceremoniously, you drape yourself over his naked form, head on his shoulder. âYouâre not losing me. Not after being the sole reason I pass this devilâs module.â
âIs that all it takes? Make sure you donât fail?â
âAnd give head like that.â Itâs a half joke. âBut also be Kim Mingyu comma TA.â
He mimics you between a breathy laugh, âComma TA. Not anymore, I guess.â
âHow happy are you?â
âStill have to grade the last set of papers. But I got what I wanted.â
âThe recommendation? You deserve it.â
âThat, and not having to be in Dr. Choâs presence every other day. And you.â
You kiss his shoulder. âLook at you. All grown up with your big boy grad school on the horizon.â
âNot just yet.â
âYouâll get there too. If you can power through this hellsent semester, you can power through anything grad school applications throw.â
Mingyu shifts where he lays, taking a turn to lie on his side to face you. The afternoon sun peeks from behind his form, his outline made of pure gold. His breath is in your face as he talks, and thereâs comfort in the air it penetrates.
âI only powered through this because of you. I hope you know that.â Heâs smiling.Â
âGirlfriend duties,â you quote solemnly.Â
âI mean it. I knew I was walking into disaster with how this stupid job was going, all that work was just a distraction. I didnât wanna believe this was a bad idea. And then you walked in.â
You cup his face and pout, âOh, my damsel in distress.â
âHm, my knight in shining armour,â he giggles. âGalloped in and saved me from myself.â
âYou saved me too. From the world and its horrible creations.âÂ
âIâll start talking in formulas if this keeps up.âÂ
You can only grumble in mild annoyance.Â
âIâm glad I asked you to come in early that day,â he says.
âIâm glad I was a good samaritan and gathered all your stuff that day.â You grin.
Mingyu leans in and kisses you. Itâs soft, slow, and drips of the romance heâs trying to bring into the conversation. His lips are bliss, the feeling of him is bliss.Â
Itâs almost scary how easily youâve been able to give yourself to him. How quickly heâs placed himself in every nook and cranny of your heart. With his tired eyes and stronger than himself smile, the hand he extended in ways beyond you could ever explain to him. Itâs terrifying when you realise what remains on the tip of your tongue, ready and bursting.Â
But itâs true, and you can only pray it remains that way. Because in that moment, naked and tangled between Mingyuâs limbs, his heart in your ears, your hands on his being, you just know.Â
âI think I might love you too.âÂ

#camandemstudios#mingyu fluff#mingyu angst#mingyu smut#mingyu fic#mingyu scenarios#mingyu imagines#mingyu x reader#mingyu#seventeen fluff#seventeen angst#seventeen smut#seventeen fic#seventeen scenarios#seventeen imagines#seventeen x reader#seventeen#svt fluff#svt angst#svt smut#svt x reader#svt#em.writes#seventeen fic recs#mingyu fic recs#seventeenTAcollab
3K notes
¡
View notes
Text
a good run â đđđđ
⍠you swore that you loved me, but where were the clues? i died on the altar waiting for the proof.
ęŽ starring: lewis hamilton x ex-girlfriend!reader. ęŽ social media au. ęŽ includes: angst. silverstone race [merc!lewis], post-breakup dynamics, heavily inspired by taylor swift's so long, london. ęŽ commentary box: this one goes out to @binisainz, who matches my freak on so many levels. i love you (and i'm sorry). i promise to dedicate happier work for you in the near future. x đŚđ˛ đŚđđŹđđđŤđĽđ˘đŹđ
lewishamilton Silverstone weekend. đ đŹđ§ Send good vibes ~ Liked by olliebearman, francolapinto, and others
user1 IT'S SILVERSTONEEE LFG!!! user2 lock in g you got this â¤ď¸đđ georgerussell63 Best of luck mate đ ⤡ user3 great day to be a mercedes fan ⤡ user4 y'all act like they aren't co-drivers user5 is nobody going to talk about the elephant in the room ⤡ user6 wot m8 ⤡ user5 user6 isn't it hamilton's first time back in GB since. You Know ⤡ user7 user5 user6 OMG Just say it outright??? Since HIS BREAK UP.
from: +44 *** ***** ****** Hi, it's Lewis. I don't actually know if you still have my number, sooo. Should I still be introducing myself? from: +44 *** ***** ****** Anyway that's obviously not why I'm texting. I'm sure you know what this weekend is. from: +44 *** ***** ****** That's probably not how I should have started. I just mean to say I'm in London this week and I'd love if we could meet up. Coffee, maybe? Let me know âđž
yourusername i'm just getting color back into my face / i'm just mad as hell 'cause i loved this place Liked by lewishamilton and others user8 youch that caption... đ¤ user9 OMG lewishamilton LIKED?! ARE THEY BACK TOGETHER ⤡ user10 Wasn't Lewis seen with someone else at Monaco??? user11 Can y'all please leave this poor girl alone. Lol. Being an ex-WAG is hard enough. gmz Hamilton's Former Beau Gets Cryptic Ahead Of Silverstone?! Link to read in our bio đ ⤡ user11 yo gmz get a life maybe ⤡ user12 The link isn't working! user13 yourusername will you be at silverstone 𼺠we miss seeing you trackside, queen
from: +44 *** ***** ****** Hi, Lewis again. I'm not sure if you're getting my texts but they are going through so I assume they're still fine? This is a bit out of the blue but I saw some comments on your recent post. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I know when we broke up you said you wanted it mostly lowkey, so that's why we haven't really done much outside of that first press release. But I just want you to know that if you want me to say anything else about the people camping out on your page, I can. In a heartbeat from: +44 *** ***** ****** I mean, least I could do right? Haha from: +44 *** ***** ****** Would still love to grab coffee with you. Or anything, really. Is Shack-Fuyu still any good out there in Soho? I remember how much you loved that place. Hope to hear back from ya
Excerpt from TMZ's Hamilton's Former Beau Gets Cryptic Ahead Of Silverstone?!
... The long-term couple officially headed to Splitsville last year, confirmed via an Instagram story Lewis posted! The story, which featured a black and white photo of the former WAG, bore the heartbreaking caption:
yourusername and I are two best friends who have decided to part ways as a couple. We had a good run of six years that I personally would not trade for anything in the world. yourusername remains to be one of the best things that has ever happened to me, bar none. Please respect our privacy during this time; we do not intend to comment any further on this matter. Thank you.
The announcement came as a shock to the entire grid; the two had just bought a London apartment months prior, sparking rumors that wedding bells were on the horizon.
A source with direct knowledge tells TMZ that Hamilton initiated the breakup, citing plans to focus on his career. The Brit reportedly wasn't very enthusiastic about the split despite being the one to pull the plug; why, we'll never know. A man of his word, Hamilton has remained tight-lipped on the details of the split.
Looks like this is just another symptom of being on the top of the world. Can't be a champion and in love! â FIN.
from: +44 *** ***** ****** Silverstone won't be the same without you. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I'll stop now. I'm sorry. I really am.
to: +44 *** ***** ****** race safe, lewis. Seen
lewishamilton 945 days since the last win and it's finally come home. There's no crowd that deserves this more. Means so much. Silverstone, I'm all yours. Always and forever. Liked by mercedesamgf1, yourusername, and others
user14 I'M NOT CRYING YOU ARE user15 The Greatest Of All Time đđ user16 not to be that person, but yourusername liked this post and now i'm sobbing ⤡ user17 mama y papa :( scuderiaferrari â¤ď¸ ⤡ user18 BRO CHILL WE STILL GOT TIME
from: +44 *** ***** ****** Did you see? to: +44 *** ***** ****** :) to: +44 *** ***** ****** through goes hamilton. from: +44 *** ***** ****** Through goes. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I did more than race safe. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I raced for you.
yourusername â
Only people on your Close Friends list will be able to see this story.
Seen by yourfriend, lewishamilton, and others
from: +44 *** ***** ****** Where to? from: +44 *** ***** ****** Actually, you don't have to answer that. You don't owe me anything. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I apologize for the way I've behaved this whole weekend. I suppose I just missed you. from: +44 *** ***** ****** *Miss you. Still. Sorry. from: +44 *** ***** ****** The old landlord actually told me about you moving out. I didn't know how to broach the topic with you or if I was allowed to. But I guess this is it, huh? I'm going from knowing you're in England to not knowing where you are at all. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I suppose I'll have to do my absolute best in every race now. Just in case you're at that one. from: +44 *** ***** ****** I'm running out of things to say.
to: +44 *** ***** ****** take care of yourself, lewis. from: +44 *** ***** ****** You, too.
+44 *** ***** ****** Maybe: Lewis
Block this Caller
You will not receive phone calls, messages, or Facetime from people on the block list. Block Contact
For so long, London Had a good run A moment of warm sun But I'm not the one So long, London â
#lewis hamilton x reader#lewis hamilton x you#lewis hamilton imagines#lewis hamilton angst#lewis hamilton smau#f1 x reader#f1 angst#f1 imagines#f1 smau#â kae prix#â lh44#so hey UH. this was INSANE actually
501 notes
¡
View notes
Text
ââ â â â â â â â â â â â â âSECRETS WILL KILL YOU, KEEP IT HUSH.


synopsis: what was once the best times of your lives, what happens when the one you loved more than live itself, your best friend; vanishes without a trace and itâs up to you and your friends to figure out what happened? can you save her in time? tags: major angst, talks of character death, reader being oblivious, cursing, nervous and depressed reader, talks of guns, an appearance from said gun near the end, sprinkles of fluff. happy ending, somewhat. thereâs probably a bunch of other stuff iâm missing, but i need this out my face already. wc: 22k .... uhm, look away. an: iâm not sure how i feel about this, but iâve been reading too many psychological books over this past month; send help asap, and had the idea to write a little something of my own, i say little like this isnât sitting at a fat 20k+ words .. donât judge me please or iâll cry. i cried too much writing this because i hated it for so long LMAO. thank you @vifilms for proofreading and supporting this crazy idea, and helping me through it. i love you. anyway, enjoy <3

Thursday, 28th April 2015.
âyou know you could just tell your date you came down with a cold, sânot like she would notice, girls too obsessed with herself notice anything,â Abby suggested, her round dark green glasses resting on the bridge of her nose.Â
âI canât just lie,â You scoffed, looking up from your phone, and noticing Abby was clad in one of your sweaters, cross-legged and reading yet another recommended book. âBesides, you know me and dates never last, remember the last one? 20 minutes into getting to know her,â
âShe accidentally mentioned her girlfriend, yes, I will never let you live it down.â Abby giggled from beside you and shrugged. âWhatâs the worst that could happen this time? She tells you about the 4 wives she has at home?â
âFunny,â You grumbled and slapped her shoulder playfully. Abby laughed and you felt your heart flutter. You liked it when she laughed, it felt refreshing and beautiful. âIf that happens, I hope youâll be there to rescue me when I call you stressed out.â
Holding her hand over her heart, the blonde nodded with a subtle smirk on her lips. âI solemnly swear I will always rescue you from your failed dates.âÂ
âHey, Honey.âÂ
Jerry. Sweet and kind Jerry Anderson; He still looks young, even though the stubble on his face is more grey than before, the dark bags under his eyes darker, but you can tell the glint is slowly burning out in his eyes. He used to have a spark to him, but now itâs dim, almost vanishing right before you. âHey, Mr Anderson.â You coughed on smoke and cleared your throat.
âCâmon kid, Iâve known you since you were in diapers, and throwing eggs at the neighborâs house, you can call me Jerry.â He laughed, but the smile on his lips didnât reach his eyes. Not like it used to be.
Stubbing out your cigarette on the sidewalk, you chuckled nervously and wiped your hands nervously on your jeans. âYeah, no right, sorry, Jerry, habit, you knowâ you trailed off, looking at him silently, trying to work him out. âAny news?â
âNo, donât think there will be any for a while.â
Abby, your best friend, had made a joke once in her backyard that if you werenât both in a serious relationship before you turned 18, you would both date, settle down, and get married. It was a promise you promised to keep, if anything, you would be right outside her door, asking her to be your girlfriend the second you turned 18.Â
Her 26th birthday is next week.
Abby disappeared just weeks before her 18th, she left your house happy and smiley, secretly hoping you would still be single in the next two weeks. She loved you. Jerry knew how much she adored and loved you. Hearing about the dates you would set yourself up on, broke her heart but you were her best friend, so she should be happy for you right? Never ruin a best friendâs dream and wish, she told herself each time she left you and went home to cry into her pillow while her dad, god bless his soul, sat on the end of her bed, comforted her, and stood by her.
âI miss her you know?â You finally mumbled out, looking away from him. âMore than I did yesterday, and Iâll miss her more tomorrow than I did today.â The crack in your voice was evident, and it broke Jerryâs heart to see and hear you so distraught. His was hurting too, for so many reasons, but the main one was he didnât know where his daughter was and it was slowly killing him.
âI know you do, kid,â His smile was faint, his hand trembling as he took a seat beside you on the sidewalk. âMy girl loved you with all her heart,â His voice wavered and you couldnât even smile at him, you couldnât even promise him anything because how can you? âI know in my heart sheâs still out there, somewhere, Iâve heard the talk, the gossip people are saying, saying that sheâs dead, some days I believe it, some days I donât, but I do know one thing, sheâll come back, to us, to you.â
âHow do you know?â
âBecause sheâs an Anderson, we donât give up,â Jerry laughed and for a second it felt like Abby was still with you, laughing and joking like nothing else in the world mattered. âAnd sheâs your best friend, my girl wouldnât leave you behind. Sheâll come back, and that promise you made each other? When you were younger, stealing my beers and trying to smoke a joint?â He laughed again when your eyes widened and he patted your back lightly. âNo judgment here, Abby is always safe with you, but you both made a promise, and she will always keep a promise.â
âIâll find her, Jerry, I promise.â

âYouâre slouching like a dog and mâpretty sure youâre droolingâ
Peeling your eyes open slowly, you scowled at the sight of a smirking Ellie looking down at you amused. âFuck off, what do you want?â You huffed, folding your arms over your chest and closing your eyes again.
âSaw Jerry,â Her voice was suddenly softer, and you could just picture the way she was playing with her fingers, not knowing what else to say. âHe lookedââ
âWorse for wear?â
âSomething like that,â Ellie smiled and sat in the empty chair beside you. âI know this is a dumb question, but have you heard or seen anything?â
âYou mean have I seen the girl Iâm in love with walking around? The same girl who suddenly vanished into thin air?â
âDonât be a dick, mâserious.âÂ
âThen no, I havenât seen Abby walking around. Do you think I would be sitting here, drinking a beer at 1pm if Abby was here?â
Ellie, even though she pisses you off and gets under your skin, was helpful with everything. She was always there if you needed someone to talk to, always about if you needed just a little help trying to figure out when and where Abby disappeared too. After the breakup with Dina, Ellie felt herself stuck in a hole, unable to feel that push to get out and get help. You were there for each other, even if Dina did give you a subtle glare or side eye when she saw you together. You and Ellie was a line neither of you would cross. Thatâs always been how it is.Â
âHey guys!â
âOh here we go,â Ellie shrank back in her chair and held back a groan. âDoesnât this girl have other friends? I wouldnât even say we are friendsâÂ
âWho isâ Oh fuck sake.âÂ
âHow are we doing?!â Mandy, someone that Dina had brought into the friend group when Ellie and she were still together, skipped over and smiled at you both. âEllie.â
âAnyway, as I was saying,â She completely blanked her, turned back to you, and smirked. âI think that we, me and you if you get my drift, should go and look for her.â
âSay fuckinâ what now?â You blinked.
âFind whom?âÂ
âAbby, who else do you think?â Your friend snapped.
âOh, the girl who wanted you to abandon our date that one time?â
You can see her lips moving, but you donât know what she or even Ellie are saying; your eyes are locked in on the charm around her bracelet. It wasnât there a few weeks ago, youâd know, sheâs always happy and cheery, flinging her arms about like sheâs just snorted the lemonade instead of drinking it. It looked oddly familiar, but at the same time, you couldnât put your finger on it. âSo what do you think?â Ellieâs voice pulled you from your thoughts, and she looked at you with that infuriating grin.
âAbout?â
âFinding Abbyâ
Ellie canât tell if you want to throttle her or throw something at her with the way youâre staring at her. It used to freak her out when you would go silent and just stare like you suddenly forgot how to function, but lately, sheâs gotten used to it, this is your way of processing something. âEllie, you canât be serious right? We donât even know where she went beforeâ before she just disappeared. How are we going to find her? With what money? Where do we even start? This isnât some crime show we watch on the TV, Ellie, this is real, this is her lifeââ
Her hands came up, grabbed your shoulders, and squeezed tightly with a soft chuckle. âBreath, Nancy Drew, youâre going to give yourself a panic attack. We donât have to suddenly rush off, and get ourselves into trouble, we just have to retrace steps. Abbyâs steps.â
âItâs been years, El.â
âI know, but weâll find her, okay? She wouldnât just leave, and she wouldnât leave you. We all know this, you know this.â Her smile reassured you somewhat, but you still had that nerve eating away at you. What if she really was gone?

The charm was still gnawing at you. Where could you have pictured it before? You werenât 100% sure you were seeing things right, maybe it was one that you had thought you had seen before but it was your mind playing tricks on you. Maybe it was because you had a hole in your heart, and you were trying to put something there to ease it a little. To make it whole again.Â
So why couldnât you let it go? Why did you have to keep pushing yourself into something that wasnât there? Was it because you needed Abby, and you needed to find her? To restore your thoughts? Or was it because some part of you knew the outcome of whatâs happened, and you were too afraid to say it out loud?Â
âBeen a couple of years since you came in here,â Jerryâs voice rang out from behind you. He sounded tired. He probably hasnât slept properly in years, just like you. So you knew how he was feeling. âYou and Abby would try stealing the candy, but I always knew it was you two. Always sneaking around and causing trouble between yourselves.â
You looked at him over your shoulder, fingers grasping at the picture he hand hung up on the wall of Abby, tightly and smiled painfully. âDid Abby take anything? When youââ
âI would have told you, you know that.â Jerry cut you off, dropping the box in his hands onto the floor, and sighed softly. âIâve been in her room hundreds of times since she, well, since she disappeared and I havenât noticed anything different. I havenât even changed the wallpaper, sâtoo hard to handle.â
âShe wouldnât have left without a reason, Jerry. Abby doesnât just go missing. If she was in trouble, she would have come to me, if anything was wrong, she would have called me, she would have asked for my help.â
âThis is hard for me to talk about.â
âAnd you think Itâs not hard for me?â You scoffed, gripping the picture tighter. âMy best friend goes missing and thereâs not a goddamn thing I can do. Thereâs nothing I can do. It fucking kills me to know that sheâs probably out there, scared and alone, and Iâm here feeling sorry for myself? You know how fucking shitty that makes me feel that I couldnât keep her safe? Sheâs not fucking here and Itâs my fault because I didnât protect her hard enough. I should have walked her home that night, I should have done more.âÂ
For the first time in years, Jerry can see how terrified you are. For a while, youâve been able to keep your emotions and feelings at bay, keep them under control, but as you stand there, looking at him, he can see a younger you. A scared little you. You look small, broken, and terrified as you stand before him. âThis isnât your fault,â He shakes his head and clenches his fist. âThis has never been your fault.â
âWhen I look at you, I wait for you to shout and yell at me. Blame me for her going missing, I wait every single time, and it never comes. Thatâs pathetic, right? That I wait for you to blame me for the reason your daughter is missing.â
His sudden sob catches your attention, and you feel like shit. Youâve never meant to make him upset, youâve always been the one to make people laugh, to make their stomachs hurt over a silly joke you made, but always has everyone laughing and smiling. But youâve made him cry, and you suddenly feel lost again. âMâsorryââ
âIâve never blamed you for this, and I wonât start todayâ
You find Ellie on her porch step that same afternoon after your conversation with Jerry, nursing a glass of water in her hand and her eyebrow raises just slightly when you storm over and stand right in front of her with your arms folded over your chest. âAlright? You look like youâre on the verge of a mental breakdown or murder.â She joked, and your lips quirked up just slightly. âWhatâs up?â
âI want to find Abby.â
Just like that, Ellie placed her glass beside her, almost knocking it over when she leaned back and grinned at you. âNancy Drew, this is going to be something,â She lazily smiled and stood up quickly. âJust donât go telling Joel, he worries enough about me and whatnot,â
âTell him that weâre just going camping, just until we get somewhere with whatever steps we have to retrace around here.â
âCamping?â She scoffed and glared at you.
âEllie, you dress like you live in the fuckinâ woods, heâll believe you.â You rolled your eyes, brushed past her, up the stairs, and into her house. âCâmon idiot!â
âGod, yes Mother!â
When you were younger, you and Abby spent a lot of time at Ellieâs house. Joel always had to refill glasses with lemonade to put more sandwiches on empty plates, and you were always thankful for him, Ellie, and Abby. Always for Abby. The memories of your childhood, your growing up, lingered in certain parts of the house. For a split second, you felt like you were back there as you walked into the living room; you remember how Abby almost cried when she lost a game of Uno, and Ellie teased her nonstop for it. You remember how the blonde would cuddle into your side during random movie nights, especially the horror movies Dina decided to watch, even though she would turn them off most of the time because it got too scary.Â
The picture of the 4 of you still sits on the fireplace and a smile curves on your lips. You still remember the day it was taken, and how cold it was to take such a picture in the snow. If you squint hard enough, you can see the redness forming on Abbyâs nose, and if pictures had audio then you would be able to faintly hear the chattering sound of Ellieâs teeth at how cold it was that night. You werenât sure if Ellie would have gotten rid of all the memories, but you were thankful she didnât. You lost Abby, Jerry lost Abby, but in the end, you all lost her. You all lost a part of yourselves that morning he couldnât find her. A little bit of each of you died when the posters were put up all around Jackson not even a week later. The missing poster still haunts you. No matter what.
âEven in pictures, Abby always wanted to be close to you.â
Joel. Placing the picture back down, you turn around and find him holding logs of wood. His hair was slightly shorter; Ellie probably had enough and took the scissors to it. His eyes still had a small glimmer of hope, but he still looked exhausted. âYeah,â You nodded and fumbled with your hoodie sleeve. âHavenât taken a photo since, feels too weird without her in them. It would also feel like cheating, canât take a picture that sheâs not in, you know?â A faint smile tugged at your lips.
âYouâll all take one together when sheâs back, no doubt about it. Hell, Ellie will probably fill her wall with new pictures of you guys,â Like Jerry, Joelâs smile doesnât reach his eyes and you hold back either a sigh or a cry. âEl misses her too, you know?â He added quietly, like he was scared she would hear you both. âShe might not talk about it, like you, but Iâve heard her crying at night, sometimes it takes me hours to get her to calm down. Poor girl almost sent herself into a panic attack last night because she was crying so much. I wish I knew how to help her, all I ever want is to help her and keep her safe and I donât know how. I feel lost because I canât help her when she needs it.âÂ
âYouâre doing the best you can, Joel.â You wanted to help her too, you wanted to ease and help everyone but even you were lost and confused. âShe knows youâre here, and sheâll come to you when sheâs ready to talk about it. I promise.â
âYeah I knowââ
âJoel? I thought you were out with Tommy?â Ellie appeared finally and looked between you both. âYou guys alright?â She laughed nervously and dropped her jacket on the back of the chair with a shiver. It was slowly getting colder, so more blankets and fires were needed.
âYeah, yeah, was just catching up and stuff, havenât seen Joel or Tommy for a while.âÂ
âIf you didnât cancel on the dinner last week, you would have seen them,â She teased, kissing Joelâs cheek and taking the wood from his hands before walking over to the almost gone-out fire. âOld man misses you, he misses all of you.â
Even Abby, she thinks.Â
âRight, you guys staying for dinner or?â Joel laughed.
âYes, weâre staying,â Ellie looked at you, folding her arms over her chest. âArenât we?â
âYeah, missed your cooking.â You grinned playfully at him.Â
âWeâll be in my room!â
âI know El, Itâs the only place you socialize.â
Pushing open her door, Ellie slumps herself in her desk chair, sighs, and then looks over at you as you slump face-first onto her bed. âRight, operation find Abby, whatâs first?â
âWell, we all saw her that night, surely someone knows something that we donât,â you mumbled before lifting your head slowly with a grumble. âAbby doesnât just go missing within 24 hours, El. Not without someone seeing something. Have you seen how many people lurk outside the bar? Lurk around the shops? Someone has to have seen her, or something.â
âSo, we start there. We ask everyone.â

âCâmon dude, surely you remember seeing her at least once that night?!â Ellie scowled, holding up a photograph of Abby in his face, almost shoving it under his nose with how angry she was getting. Sighing under your breath, you reached your hand up and pulled her arm away.Â
âEl, he doesn't remember, letâs ask someone else. Preferably someone who isnât drunk right now.â
âWeâve been asking people for hoursââ
âItâs not going to happen overnight El, and as much as I want it to, Itâs impossible.â You rubbed at your face and sighed loud enough for her scowl to drop and a frown to appear. âI just want her to be okay, and I know that sheâs scared somewhere, whenever she is, but I need to find her.â
âWeâll find her, weâll look around all day and night if we have to.â
The metal door clangs loudly against the brick wall, sending a slight vibration through the floor, and the feeling of terror sinks in all over again. The room is dark, and cold, not even a blanket could keep you warm if you tried hard enough. The days have been lost, not even sure what year it is anymore, and not even having enough energy to count specks of dirt on the walls have been long forgotten. The energy to keep going was slowly getting lower and lower.Â
The painful squeak of the door opening would cause anyone to lose sleep. âEat your food, donât make me waste more money on this shit if you donât want to eat it. Stop being ungrateful and do what I tell you.â The small plate of food hits the floor, almost going everywhere, and just like that the door slams shut again without another word.Â
How much longer?
âYeah, I saw her.â
Both yours and Ellieâs eyebrows shoot up at his words, and you look at her with a glimmer of hope. âYou did? You saw her?â You asked.Â
âCourse I did,â He nodded, taking a hit from his cigarette and coughing abruptly. âWas getting something from the bakery store, bread or something? She wasnât there for long, but I saw her.â
âWas she with anyone?â
âNah, was by herself, she didnât seem to be in a rush or anything. I was cleaning up the tables outside, and thatâs when I saw her. Then when it came about that she had gone missing the next week, I didnât know what to think. I donât think she went missing, but I suppose I should let the professionals deal with it.â
âProfessionals,â Ellie clicked her tongue on the side of her mouth and laughed. âYeah because theyâre much help.â
âThank you,â You smiled apologetically. âLet us know if you can remember anything else.â
âWill do. Hope you find her.â
 Just as you and Ellie turned around to leave, to ask someone else, that high-pitched voice rang out again. Stopping you both in your tracks. âHi!â Mandy smiled sweetly, looking between you both as she got closer.Â
âGonna take this pencil and shove it right in my fuckinâ eye,â Ellie grumbled under her breath.
âHi, Mandy.â You murmured.
âWhatcha doing?âÂ
âLooking for Abby, didnât we mention this to you yesterday?âÂ
Jabbing Ellie in the rib, you shook your head when she glared at you and slapped on a fake smile. âDid you see Abby at all?â You asked, looking at her closely.Â
Mandy looked between you both again, eyes just widening slightly before she laughed and shrugged. âNo? We werenât close.âÂ
âDonât have to be close to someone to know if you saw them or not.â Ellie pointed out.Â
âI was with my parents, and even if I did see her, I was drinking too much that night to know,â She shrugged again, looking at you with a happy smile. One that for some reason, made you uncomfortable. âSpeaking of which, I have some books I have to give back to my parents.â
âYou remember being drunk that many years ago?âÂ
There it was again, the wave of her hand brushing her hair away from her face when you noticed that same bracelet charm. It was making you irritated because you still canât picture where itâs from, or who made it. But you know that youâve seen it before, that you do know and are aware of. ââIf thereâs anything I can do to help, let me know, okay?â Mandy offered, giving you one final smile before she walked away.Â
âShe pisses me off more and more every day I swear. Remind me why you went on a date with her?â Ellie slipped the pen into her pocket and rubbed her nose harshly. Was she coming down with yet another cold? You thought to yourself.
âMânot sure, she always cornered me when I was alone and kept asking until I said yes, thatâs it.â You shrugged as you both walked. âShe always shows up when weâre talking about Abby, no?âÂ
âI donât think sheâs the kidnapping or killing type, to be honest. Too bubbly and cheerful.â
âSheâs not dead, Ellie.â
Halting in her steps, Ellie turns around and acknowledges her words quickly. âShit, no I know, I didnât mean it like that. This is just stressing me out, weâre still getting nowhere.â
You both take a seat on the chairs outside the bakery, tired and feeling sorry for yourself as you both silently look through the list of names of people you still need to talk to. Wanted to know if anyone had seen her, just something. âThereâs still the lady who owns the wine shop, that creepy guy who owns the other bar,â Ellie mumbled.Â
Brushing your fingers over the paper, you shrink back in the chair with a sigh, one that already explains how tired you are, and close your eyes.Â
Saturday, 1st May 2015.
âYeah, mâhere,â you mumbled, holding your phone to your ear, feet kicking at the rocks. âMake sure you rescue me.â
âI have a good feeling about this date,â Abby admitted softly, unbeknownst to you, holding back her sobs, and smiled even though you couldnât see her. âI think Itâs going to be amazing.â
âYeah? How do you know?â
âBecause I know you, and you deserve this.âÂ
Her words buried deep in your chest, and you felt your eyes slowly well up with tears, but you couldnât cry, not today, not when you were about to have a fucking date. âAbby?â
You werenât sure if you heard the hitch in her breath, and if you did, you ignored it. âYeah?â She asked, fumbling with the sleeve of the hoodie she stole from you.
âThank you.âÂ
Blinking away the tears in her eyes, Abby smiles sadly to herself. âOf course. I love you.â
âI love youââ
âY/N? Hi!âÂ
âAbby I gotta go, Iâll come over after, yeah?âÂ
âGood luck.â
Slipping your phone into your back pocket once you hung up, you smiled tightly. âMandy, right?âÂ
âThe one and only! Seems unsettling it took you until the first date to know my name, but whatever, weâre here now.â She didnât seem to notice your tight-lipped smile and urge to roll your eyes. âShall we?â
âLead the way.â Â
The small restaurant was slightly dimmed, smelling of cigarettes and strong beer. Mandy didnât seem to mind, in fact, she was happily walking around; looking for a table to sit at and a small shriek of happiness flooded from her once she found a table that fitted her. âLetâs sit, come come.â The redhead hurried, throwing her bag and jacket onto the table beside her.
âOh, uh, sure,â You took her things, smiling apologetically at the old couple who looked at her shocked, and seated yourself in the chair opposite her. âMânot sure what to eat here, never been before.â You admitted sheepishly.Â
Mandy, who had yet to even speak, looked at you with a smile. âEverything here is good except for the lemon tart and the white wine.â
âWhatâs wrong with the wine?â
âTastes like shit, typical for them, and whatnot.â She shrugged again, and It caught you off guard with how fast she covered up her distaste for things with a wide smile. One thatâs almost sinister-looking. She was a good person though, Dina mentioned she was. You couldnât judge her based on a smile. âNow, how did you meet Dina and Ellie?â
âI met Abby first, actuallyââ
âAbby? Why doesnât that name ring a bell?â
âOh, uh, Jerry Andersonâs daughter? They own the candy store?â
âAh,â Mandy flashed yet another smile, sitting back in her chair and nodding along. âDonât know them personally, I wouldnât have a reason to.âÂ
âRight,â Clearing your throat, you hummed and gave her your best grin. Did you look stupid? Maybe, but did she care? Apparently not. âHow did you meet Dina?âÂ
The sharp pinch on your skin had your eyes snapping open, your body almost falling out of the chair when you spotted Ellie looking at you, grinning from ear to ear. âDude, fuck you.â
âYouâre wasting time, If mânot allowed to nap, then you arenât allowed either.â She scoffed, slipped the sheet of paper into her pocket, and stood up. âWe arenât getting anywhere, letâs go back to mine and we can go from there.âÂ
âWhat if thereâs nothing?â
âThereâs always something.âÂ

You started to lose count of the days. First they started as days, and then they suddenly started blending into weeks. You and Ellie were still none the wiser. Still lost on every account of what happened when Abby had left your house the night she vanished. You had barely left your bed; only to shower, brush your teeth and eat, but besides that, it felt like you were falling into another deep hole you werenât sure you could dig yourself out of.Â
Today was the first day you gathered enough energy to pull yourself out of the hole that was your unmade bed, and clothe yourself in something that had way too many holes, and probably is over 5 years old, but it was a start. âMost books that come back are usually missing a couple of pages, sânot unusual,â Brenda, the owner, explained with a tired smile. âDoesnât make it less annoying though.â
âYeah, canât read a book with a fuckinâ page missin,â You grumbled, feeling the same emotions as her. You could get lost in your books, and to know the one you wanted to read was missing about 5 pages pissed you off. âSâfine, Iâll just take the other books.â
âAre you sure, Honey?â
âYeah, mâsureââ
From the corner of your eye, there was a sudden flash, a sliver of blonde hair caught your attention and your body did a full 180, dropping the books on the floor, causing Brenda to let out a scowl and drop to her knees quickly just to pick them up. They were collector books, how dare you just drop them?â Shit, fuck, sorry, Brenda, I have to goââ
You were already running away before you finished your sentence. Pushing people out of your way, tugging them and almost pushing them over as you scrambled to get past the large crowds. âAbby!?â You shouted, sadly tripping someone over in the process, but a part of you didnât care. âMove out the fuckinâ way,â Your hands pressed onto a back, shoving them a little too hard for anyoneâs liking, sending them tumbling over one of the stools. âAbby!â
Before you could comprehend anything else, let alone think about the blonde hair, your body barreled into another harshly, sending you both to the floor, your back hits the dirty floor with a loud thud and winds you in the process. âFuck!â You hissed, coughing painfully.
âJesus Christ, Y/N.âÂ
Jesse. Turning on your side, your eyes flutter open, the pain in your back trailing all over your body as you find him already pushing himself off the floor, crouching beside you, and holding a hand out for you. âSorry, I just thought I saw someone.â You explained, taking his hand and letting him pull you up.Â
âAbby?â
âWhat?â
âYou were shouting her name,â He laughed, shrugging his shoulders and dusting off yours. âDina told me you and Ellie were looking for her, or something like that,â Jesse murmured, holding his hand up to block the sun from his eyes. âHad any luck?â
âI wouldnât be shouting her name like a fuckinâ maniac and pushing people over if I had luck finding her,â You scoffed and rolled your eyes. His smile fell at your aggression, but quickly recovered and patted your shoulder with another smile. âSorry, Iâve justâ I donât know what to do, It feels like sheâs still here, somewhere, and I just want her to come back.â
âI know, and she will. Youâre both like, stuck to each other, If anyone can find her, Itâs you,âÂ
âY/N! Y/N!â
Turning your head, you find Ellie frantically running towards you and Jesse. She barely acknowledges him though and instead, shoves a piece of paper into your hands before hunching over, resting her hands on her thighs and panting heavily. âWhatâs this?â You question with a raised eyebrow.Â
âAbby was arguing with someone,â She spoke between pants and cleared her throat. âThat creepy old man we saw last week? Freaked me the fuck out, to be honest, but when I saw him again this morning, he kind of cornered me and started telling me that she was arguing with someone near the barn, it got heated, but thatâs all he remembers.â Ellie finally got out.Â
âArguing? With who?â
âFuck if I know, but he said it sounded bad. So whoever she was arguing with, knows where she went, or was the one to see her last, right?â She blinked, copying Jesse and blocking the sun from her face with her hand.Â
âI thought I saw her,âÂ
âSaw who? Abby? When?â
âWas talking to Brenda about books, and then It just felt like I saw herââ
âAlmost took me out in the process.â Jesse chimed in.
Rolling your eyes, you looked down at the sheet of paper; the same sheet that listed the names of everyone who lived here. âSo she was arguing with someone? That could have been anyone.â
âHalf of them are old, one argument would send them into their coffinââ
âEllie!âÂ
âWhat?! Mâjust saying! Itâs true.â
âJesse, do you remember Abby wearing jewelry?â You asked after a few seconds of silence.
His eyebrow rose this time, only to furrow. âUh, maybe, Iâm not sure, why?â
âAbby never wore jewelry unless it was from you or Jerry.â Ellie gave you the same confused look. âWhy? What is that big head of yours thinking?â
âNah, sânothing, was just wondering,â You shook them off and scrambled the paper between your hands. âSomething just feels off and I canât explain it no matter how much I think.â
âJerry still has all those pictures we took, maybe we can start there this time, see if anything jumps out at you?â Jesse suggested this time.
âWhaâ You?â Ellie scoffed.
âAbby is my friend too, Ellie.â
âAnd yet youâve never taken the time to visit us or Jerry since she went missing, shocker, Jesse.â
âGuys, enough,â You pinched the bridge of your nose harshly and sighed deeply. âLetâs just go see Jerry for the pictures.â
Jerry wasnât lying when he said he hadnât changed anything in Abbyâs bedroom. The wallpaper was still the yellow and sunflower she picked when she turned 16. The bed sheets were the same light blue with clouds that scattered around the fabric. Her mirror still had every Polaroid hung up from the multiple drunk nights you all had. âThereâs still another box in the attic, Iâll get it for you.â Her Dad appeared in the doorway, looking at you all with a gentle smile. âWeird seeing all of you in her room after so long,â He chuckled and placed the box on her bed. âCan I get any of you something to eat or drink?â
âNo, thank you.â
âMâalright, but thank you, Jerry.â
âCan I have a glass of water?â
âReally, Jesse?â Ellie glared.Â
âWhat?! Iâm thirsty.â Jesse glared back.
âIâll get your drink and then grab the last box.â Jerry laughed at their bickering and left the room.Â
âRight,â Ellie clasped her hands together and took refuge at Abbyâs untouched desk. You could tell Jerry hadnât touched anything there because the old music festival poster was still lying there on the oak. âSomething that could help us.â She muttered to herself while you and Jesse were already opening the box.Â
âI didnât realize how many pictures we took when we were all together,â Jesse smiled fondly at the thought of seeing so many old memories between you all and instantly shoved his hand into the filled box and grabbed a handful of pictures.
âHow many are there?â Ellie laughed from the other side of the room.
âMore than Joel has of those vinyls, thatâs for sure.â You chuckled.
âOld man is gonna be so jealous we have more pictures together than he has of his beloved music.âÂ
âOr you could find another that he doesnât have yet, you know, being a good daughter to the old man seeing as he feeds you 4 times a day and takes care of you,â You suggested with a subtle smirk. âJust a little idea of what to get him for his birthday.â
âOh yeah? What are you gonna get him then?â
âAnother jumper, what else?â
âYouâve given him over 10 since you met him!â
âDidnât you steal 3 of my jumpers?â You quipped back, eyebrow rose and lips quirked up.
âYou justâ Your jumpers are comfy, okay!?â
âOh I was just asking, youâre the one getting all defensive,â You teased before taking your handful of pictures. You donât remember each time you took them, there were so many that it could go back years before you were even friends with Ellie or Jesse. There were more than enough to write an entire book; it seemed as you scanned over a couple.Â
As you went to grab another set, seeing as the ones you picked didnât really give you much, you had knocked over the pile that Jesse had already looked through, and sent them tumbling to the floor. Cursing under your breath, you rolled your eyes at yourself and sighed. âShit,â You grumbled, placing the pile of photos on the bed before kneeling on the floor to grab the few that you knocked over. âEllie, did you find anything?âÂ
âNah, still nothing.â The Brunette sighed from the desk.
Picking up the abandoned photos, you quickly catch onto a slight glint and sparkle from the corner of your eye; furrowing your eyebrows, you push the pictures onto the bed with the others, and lean your head down more, looking under her bed. âWhat theââ Reaching towards whatever it was you thought you saw, you grabbed it, and your lips parted with a soft exhale.
A bracelet.
Holding it up, you inspected it closely. âWhatâs that?â Jesse spoke up as you noticed there were quite a few charms already missing. Did Abby hide them? Why was there only a few left, and the others were gone? âIs that Abbyâs?â
Ellie had quickly snatched it from your hands, which caused you to almost stumble onto the floor at her abrupt movement, held the bracelet up and looked at it. âIâve only seen this once,â
âSo Itâs hers?â
âI assume so, I saw her with it on her 16th birthday,â Ellie nodded and took a seat in the middle of Abbyâs bed with her legs crossed. âIâve only seen her with it on once, and I mean, you guys should know that too seeing as you got her the fuckinâ thing, Y/Nâ
Did you? Then why couldnât you remember?Â
âHow donât you remember?â Jesse laughed and slapped the back of your head gently. âCan we just talk about the fact she wore all of your clothes? She wouldnât go out unless you were going, nor would she go to any of the parties here unless you were with her? You were both obsessed with each other. You bought it for her, or made it for her, should I say.â
âMade it?â You choked out, looking over at the bracelet that was still in Ellieâs hands. âI donâtââ
âItâs been hard for all of us, but more so for you,â Ellie admitted quietly and smiled sadly. âAbs was closer to you than the rest of us. We can all understand that this is something you donât remember because youâre too busy blaming yourself.â
âThatâs notââ
âY/N, youâve been blaming yourself the second the missing posters went up,â Jesse spoke, sitting beside Ellie on the bed. âEvery day since then youâve blamed yourself,and youâre still blaming yourself, right now, I just know your head is going through the cycle Itâs been going through for the past god knows how many years.â
âBut why donât I remember making her that? Why?â
âBecause youâre blocking it out,â Jerry spoke up. âYouâre blocking out all the memories because youâre scared.â
âMânot scaredââ
Planting the final box on the floor, Jerry crouches beside you and places his hand comfortingly on your shoulder. âYouâre blocking them out because youâre scared. Youâve been blocking them out because youâre blaming yourself, and maybe if you block them out, it wonât hurt you as muchââ
âHurt me,â You scoffed and shrugged his hand off your shoulder as you stumbled to your feet. âWonât hurt me as much. Mânot ready to let her go, is that better for you? Maybe if I keep my memories locked away, Iâll have more time to make new ones when she comes home. I know this is fucking hard for all of us, for you, but it is killing meââ You paused to take a deep breath, ignoring the worried looks on all of them. âItâs fucking killing me going through fucking photos, asking people around the fucking village, trying to figure out what happened when sheâs fucking alone, all alone and I donât know where she is. This is pointless, all of this is pointless because Abby means more to me than some pictures! Iâm here looking at fucking pictures while the girl I love is somewhere out there, fucking scared and thereâs nothing I can do. I canât promise you anything, I canât promise no one anythingâ
âY/Nââ Jerry frowned as he rose to his feet and cupped your face gently between his hands. âYouâre looking for her,â He murmured with a soft smile. âYouâre doing something, and youâre doing a better job than the so-called professionals.â
âI canât even figure out who she argued with, I havenât done anything.â You choked out, body falling into his as he wrapped his arm around you and cupped the back of your head. âI need her back, I just want her back.â
âI have faith. With you both, I always have.â Jerry smiled.Â
You werenât sure what happened after your small breakdown, all you know is that youâre still sitting in Abbyâs bedroom 5 hours later. Still sifting through endless pictures, notes, journals, anything to give you a hint of something. Was Abby afraid of someone? Why was she arguing? Who was she arguing with? You had so many questions and yet you felt like you had so little time to get everything. âThis is the second time sheâs yelled at me, what did I do wrong?â Ellie, who was hunched over the desk, mumbled as your eyes locked onto her back.
âEllie? Who yelled at you?â You asked, sitting up slowly.
âWhat? No, Itâs a diary entry in Abbyâs journal,â She turned around, made her way over to you, climbed onto the bed, and slumped beside you. âLook,â Ellie passed you the book, onto the page she was reading and you furrowed your eyebrows when you saw it.
âWho yelled at her?â You took the journal from her hand and skimmed through more of the pages, ones you assume Ellie has yet to read through. Jesse left not that long ago, muttering apologies but his parents wanted him to help with dinner.Â
The more you flipped through, the more you noticed.
Sunday, 2nd May 2015.
I think she hates me. Iâm not sure what I did for her to hate me, but apparently I must have done something.
Sunday, 2nd May 2015.
She threatened me today. I havenât stopped crying. I donât know why she hates me.
Monday, 3rd May 2015.
Itâs getting harder and harder to look at her and tell her Iâm fine. Itâs breaking my heart and I canât even talk to her about it.Â
âObviously the last one has to be about you. So something happened and she couldnât even talk to you about it, I assume?â Ellie slumped her head on your shoulder and grumbled. âIs there anything else? To just give us a timeline for however long this went on for?â
âThat was the last one,â You closed the book and placed it on your lap with another long sigh. âAbby never told Jerry anything, so I doubt talking to him about this is going to do much.â
âSo, over the past god knows how many weeks weâve been doing this, weâve found out that someone was on Abbyâs case, who, thatâs still another thing we need to figure out,â Ellie explained, nervously fumbling with the ring on her finger.
âI wish she would have spoken to me, I could have done something, kept her even safer,â You felt worse now than you did earlier, reading those journal entries made your heart sink. Your best friend, the girl you were in love with, was going through something she felt like she couldnât even talk to you about.Â
âAbby would hate that youâre blaming yourself,â Ellie frowned, curling into your side and rubbing her nose. âYou know that she would never let you think that about yourself, it will kill her to know youâre blaming everything on yourself, still.â
âI always promised I would keep her safe, and I couldnât even do that. If I did, she would still be here, she wouldnât be missing, El.â
âWhen we find her, mâgoing to ask her for permission to punch youââ
âWhy?!â You cut her off, outraged and shocked at her words.
âBecause then maybe youâll stop blaming yourself for this, for everything thatâs happened.âÂ

Youâre sitting at the bar the next evening when it happens, minding your own business as you wait for Jesse and Ellie, when a guy, a gruff guy walks up to you; slightly drunk and smoking a cigarette, when he bumps into your shoulder and scowls. âHeard you and your little friends are looking for that girl,â He hiccups, the stench of his beer breath has your stomach churning and nose scrunching up at the smell.
âFucks it to you?â
âSheâs been gone for years, no chance sheâs gonna turn up now, no?â His laugh made your skin crawl and you didnât know if you wanted to smash his beer bottle over his head or break his jaw. Maybe both, it would be easier for him to stop talking to you. âI donât know why you try, she was a lost cause years before she disappeared.â
âYou donât even know her, shut your fuckinâ mouth.â You warned, standing up slowly. You towered over him by a few more inches, and half expected him to cower away, most people did, but he didnât, he just laughed harder, taking constant drags of his cigarette and looked you up and down. âMânot afraid to shove that bottle down your throat, now fuck off.â Your face was now in his, and the smell of beer smelt worse if that was even possible.
âOh yeah? The fuck you gonna do? Shove this bottle down my throat? Your threats are empty and pointless, like your search for your little fuckinâ girlfriendââ
âSay one more thing about her, I dare you.â
Before you can go through with your promise, a hand grabs your arm and pulls you away. âHeâs not worth it, just let it go.â Ellie, who you hadnât even noticed arrived, murmured into your ear and dragged you away from the smiling man. âFighting someone isnât worth it when we have someone more important to find, okay?â
âStupid cunt.â You growled at him, letting Ellie drag you out of the bar and into the open air. âCould have just let me throttle the bastard or something.â
âAnd risk you getting into trouble when Abby is waiting for you?â Jesse spoke up and pushed himself off the wall.Â
Just her name has you relaxing in your spot and nodding to yourself slowly. Abby was waiting for you, wherever that might be, she was. No matter how long it takes, youâre going to be the one to save the woman you love. All you have is hope. Pulling out your small box of cigarettes along with your lighter, you shove one between your lips, lighting it up and taking a long drag. âSo, the notes, the bracelet, whatâs next?â You mumbled between puffs.Â
âAre you chain smoking?â Ellie laughed with a subtle scoff.Â
âGive me a break, I havenât slept properly in years,â You rolled your eyes and slumped your head on Jesseâs shoulder. âWhatâs next?â You asked again.Â
As Ellie went to open her mouth, Mandy appeared outside the small shop beside the bar, looking over at you and waving quickly. âY/N!â And before you knew it, she was already standing in front of you before you had the time to register what was going on. âAre you free tonight?â
Coughing on your cigarette, Jesse slapped your back and laughed softly while you cleared your throat and smiled painfully at her. âTonight? Uhm mânot sure, why?âÂ
âI was wondering if you wanted to come over and have dinner with me?â
âTonight?â
âYes, silly, I said tonight didnât I?â
You could see Ellie rolling her eyes beside you from the corner of your eyes, and as much as you wanted to say no, maybe saying yes might help your case. You could try and find something else about Abby, maybe Mandy might have seen someone being rude or mean to Abby when you werenât around. âYeah, sure!â You agreed, a little too enthusiastically for your liking.Â
âWhat?!â Ellie shouted.Â
âOh really? That would be wonderful, howâs 7?â
â7 is great, Mandyâ
âWhat the fuck is wrong with you?â Ellie whisper-yelled once Mandy walked away and was so far away that she couldnât hear you guys. âAre you fucked in the head or something?â
âRelax, If Itâs just me with her, she might know something and tell me.â
Eyeing you up closely, she simply sighs and slaps your back gently. âMake sure you text or call if she starts to freak you out too much.â
âOr if she tries to kiss you again,â Jesse added with a snicker.Â
âYou guys are so funny, seriously, should become comedians or something.â You took another drag of your cigarette and glared at them both.
âAnd never be able to see your angelic face again? How would I survive?â Ellie gasped dramatically and grinned. âNo but seriously, donât give into her weirdness. Remember, only anything to do with Abby, got it?â
âYes mom,â You huffed while Ellie simply pinched your arm and laughed at your scowl. âWe have time to kill until then though. Any idea on who threatened her? I keep thinking but no one comes to mind.â
âNo fuckinâ idea, Abby had her secrets, ones she didnât tell us about, but if it risked her like, mâsure she would have told one of us right? She wouldnât just hide it until something like this happened?âÂ
âNone of us knew this was going to happen, let alone Abby knowing,â You murmured, using your shoe to put out the cigarette you dropped on the floor once you were done with it. âAbby used to have multiple journals, were the others not in there?â
âNot that I saw, she probably kept there somewhere else. Journals arenât supposed to be snooped in, hiding it is what I would have done if I had one.â
âSo youâre saying we look in her room again?â
âWorth a try, might find something else.â
Abbyâs Dad didnât mind that you were once again sitting in her bedroom, it was something you all did when you were younger; Abbyâs house being the one that everyone hung out in the most, so changing that routine now would be pointless.Â
Looking through the endless supply of books in her bookshelf, you bite back another sigh when you placed yet another back, still not finding anything that could be of use or even a fuckinâ clue, and turning around. Ellie was sitting cross-legged on the floor at the end of the bed, going through the journals you both looked through last night, and with the sigh she lets out when she throws her head back, you know itâs another deadend.Â
âNothing, again.â
Sitting down beside her, you take the journal from her hands, your fingers brush against the words, even her words were somewhat comforting to you. As you fumbled with the pages, you were suddenly intrigued with what Ellie was doing; Reading notes you all used to write for each other if one of you had gotten into trouble with your parents, and werenât allowed to leave the house. âAbby never got in trouble, like ever,â She laughed.
âBecause we never told Jerry about the other shit,â You snickered, the memory of Abby trying weed for the first time, and her Dad freaking out when you both arrived home, slightly buzzed out your minds, trying to act normal. âHe knows about most of the weed stories, but not the insane shit we used to get up to as kids.â
âWe were fuckinâ crazy, werenât we?â
âOh, we should have been shipped off to the ward for the shit we did.â
âRemember Brenda thinking she had rats in the shop? But it was just us making it seem like she was going crazy?â
âI still regret that, I wouldnât have done it if you didnât give me 4 joints before,â You threw your head back and laughed. Your laughter died down quite quickly when you brushed your thumb against the edge of the page, a sharp pain shooting through your hand. âShit! Ow.â
âFuck you do?â
âPaper cut,â You grumbled and looked down at your small wound.
Only for your eyes to widen at the slight kink in the paper.
âEllieâ
âDid you know that Abby used to call you butterfly?â Ellie, oblivious to your stare, laughed.
âEllieâ You repeated, louder this time.
âWhat?â
Turning to face you, her eyes land on the paper instead of your face, and the letters fall from between her fingers once youâre peeling apart two pieces that had somewhat been glued together.Â
âTypical Abby, fair play,â Ellie murmured once you pushed the two pieces apart.
A whole new entry.Â
Tuesday, 4th May 2015
I can feel her. Sheâs everywhere. Sheâs told me to back off, but what do I say when she notices Iâm pulling away? I canât even smile at her without it being a problem. What if she kills me? Sheâs crazy, I donât think anyone understands. I tried to keep her away, but sheâs clawing her way into everything and tearing things apart. At night, I can see her outside the window, looking at me, smiling at me, looking at me like she wants to kill me. Who do I tell? Who can I go to without making it a big issue? Is she really capable of killing me? Making me disappear?Â
What if she kills me?
What if she does?
What if this is the last time Iâll see my friends, my dad, my journals?
WhatâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚ.
Closing the book quickly, Ellie flinches beside you at the force, and you pinch the bridge of your nose. âThis is getting fuckinâ weird.â You admitted. âIâm going to kill whoever it is.â
âLetâs not jump to those conclusions just yet, is there anything else?â
âNo, itâs the only page we havenât seen. So itâs a woman, a woman was the last person to see her, right? Thatâs gotta be the only reason right now. We have nothing else and if there is other stuff, weâre fuckinâ missing it.â
âI can look through everything again when youâre with that crazy one, see if we missed anything. I donât mind drinking another black coffee, some energy drinks and staying awake all night.â Ellie joked.
âI donât mind going through it all again with you when I get back. Weâre still meeting up later, yeah?â
âIf she doesnât somehow kidnap you and trick you into dating you, yeah.âÂ
6:45pm rolled around quickly and you found yourself standing outside of Mandyâs house, one hand shoved in your jacket pocket while the other was at your side, and patiently waiting. Just as you were about to knock a second time, the door swung open to reveal a very happy Mandy, smile so wide you could see her teeth. âYou made it!â
âCourse,â You laughed, digging your hand deeper into your pocket. âSorry mâearly,â
âDonât worry, earlier the better! Come in, itâs cold out here tonight,âÂ
Stepping aside to let you in, Mandyâs hand brushes against yours as you walk past her and into her warmer house, oblivious to the way her eyes raked over you, almost a little too desperately. âThe food is in the oven, should be ready soon, can I take your jacket?â
âNah, youâre alright, Itâs freezing out there, gotta warm myself up a little.â You smiled, eyes instantly noticing just how neatly the table was set. The candles flickered almost angrily, the cutlery placed perfectly, and the tablecloth somehow matched everything. âThis is nice,â
âYes, isnât it? I wanted it to be perfect for you.â Mandy commented softly. âIâm just going to check on the food, feel free to take a seat, get yourself comfortable and stuff, I wonât be long.â
âTake your time.â
Just as you sat down at her table, a sudden loud banging had you flinching in your seat. You looked over at Mandy who halted in her steps not even 5 minutes later when she reappeared from the kitchen and from where you were sitting you could see and hear her grinding her teeth together. âWhat was that?âÂ
âThe neighbors are probably decorating again, Itâs starting to get on my nerves If Iâm being honest.â
âAt 7:30?â You laughed nervously.
âThey have no consideration for those who live beside them. Iâll start giving them a piece of my mind If they keep it up,â She explained, placing the hot pot in the middle of the table with a bright and wide smile. âThere! Can I get you anything to drink? Water? Juice? Wine?â
âSmells amazing,â You smiled and got a little more comfortable in your seat before looking at her again. âWaterâs fine, thank you.â
âItâs my Motherâs recipe, nothing beats a homemade meal,â Mandyâs smile never left her face, not even when you quickly dug into the fresh meal. âIâll be back with your water.â
You were almost done with half of your food by the time she came back with a fresh glass of water, and you looked at her with a thankful smile when she placed it beside your plate. âThank you,â You mumbled before furrowing your eyebrows. âSorry, thatâs gross.â
âNo, no itâs cute, donât worry.â She giggled, sitting in her own chair.Â
As she started digging into her meal, her eyes would flutter over at you, but you seem really into whatever it was that she made to notice the subtle flirtatious eyes she was making at you. It was delicious, and you loved food, so you couldnât complain now could you? âThis is really good,â You mumbled between chews.Â
âIâll thank my mother for you when I see her again.â Mandy smiled.
âYou might want to give me the recipe, itâs so good.â
âAs much as I like you, I canât do that, family recipe.â She smirked widely.Â
Mandy continued to eat her food, little moans of delight falling from her mouth with each bite she took, while you were suddenly falling into your own world. Mandy hadnât seemed to notice you had stopped replying to what she was asking you, or just wanted to get the food out of the way before she continued. Either way, it didnât seem to affect her much. All you could seriously think about was Abby, hoping that she had some source of something to keep her hoping and until you could find her.Â
âAre you okay? Youâve gone quiet,â Mandy murmured finally, finishing the final piece of her food. âIs it the food? Is it not sitting right with you?â
âNo! No the food was amazing, mâjust thinking, nothing to worry about.â
âWorried about what?â
âJust worried about Abby is all, like I said, nothing to worry about.â You smiled and wiped your face with the napkin you had on your lap.Â
You hadnât noticed the way the smile on her face dropped and just stared at you. âWere you close? You and Abby?â She asked.
âSince we were babies pretty much,âÂ
âThatâs nice, nice to have someone close to you and that you can trust, I suppose.â Her voice suddenly got a little quieter, and nursed her glass of wine. âHow do you know she didnât just leave willingly?â
âAbby wouldnât have left Jerry without a reason, she wouldnât have left us, left me, without a reason.â You frowned, eyes focused on the empty plate before you. âSheâs not the type of person to run away. Even when things are hard, she comes to me for help and she didnâtââ
âWas she in trouble?â
âSomeone didnât like her, threatened her, and I didnât even know. If she told me, I could have helped her, kept her safe.â
âSânot your job to protect everyone,â Mandy smiled softly, watching you closely. âYou know that right? You canât save everyone, especially if they canât even save themselves.â Her fingers graze yours on the top of the table, you werenât even sure how or when she moved hers but when you felt them against yours, your eyes locked with hers. âMaybe Abby left because there are better things out there for her, or maybe she just wanted to see something new.â
âWithout me?â The crack in your voice was evident.Â
âAnyone can leave if they truly need to or want to,â Her fingers continued to brush against yours with each word and you couldnât even move. âPeople expect so much from people around here, weâre all trying to live, find someone, and get on with our lives, and sometimes that can be too much for one person to handle. Maybe Abby didnât want to burden you with a thought she might have had.â
âHer burdens are mine,â You murmured. âWhatever she deals with, we deal with it together.â
Her hand retracted from yours quickly, once again you didnât notice the scowl on her face, and grabbed your plate from in front of you as well as her own before making her way into the kitchen. âWould you like some dessert?â She asked, abandoning the conversation altogether.
âOh, uh, sure?â
The light above flickered, making a soft buzzing sound as the room felt colder again. Sunlight wasnât a luxury anymore, even if it was so desperately needed. Mold has started coming in quicker than before. Even the eerie darkness is something straight out of a nightmare. The only thing in the room that was noticeable was the small lamp on the floor, but even that wasnât bright enough. It never was.Â
By the time Mandy came back with two bowls in her hands, you were standing by the bookshelf, running your fingers over the spines of what you can already tell are very old books. âDidnât know you liked to read books?â You asked, looking over at her.
âOh yeah! I love books, mostly the classics, but the thriller ones are my favorite. Could read them all day. I actually have to return those to Brenda soon, had them way too long.â She giggled and placed the bowls on the table. âWhat is your favorite?â
âThe Shining.âÂ
âHavenât read it before, do you have a copy I could borrow?â
âYeah sure, Iâll find it and give It to you.â
âPerfect, letâs eat dessert!â

âGlad youâre back in one piece,â Ellie was the first to comment when she noticed you walking into the bar an hour later. âDidnât try to shove her tongue down your throat this time?âÂ
âLike you tried with Abby that one time you got drunk?â You quipped back with a lazy grin and slumped into the chair beside her. âNah, she just kept touching my hand, not trying to kiss me this time.â
âOh? Are you lovebirds now?â
âKnock it off, El.â Jesse laughed and continued to sip his beer.
âNo, you imbecile, she did get weird whenever I spoke about Abby though,â You shrugged, pinching some of Ellieâs chips. âLike, she just got up and went to get dessert?â
âSheâs always been weird, so fuckinâ obsessed with you for a start.â It was Jesse this time.Â
âReally? I never got that vibe before,â
âYou wouldnât, youâre like so fucking oblivious to most shit,â Ellie snorted. âYou didnât even realize IÂ was flirting with you when I first met you. Took you 4 months to say, Ellie, were you asking me on a date that one time? Oblivious.â
âIn my defense, you fuckinâ flirt with everyone,â You defended with a soft laugh, and eyed up the pictures on the table. âWhat are you guys doing anyway?â
âWell, while you and Barbie were having your little date, me and Jesse were going through the rest of the pictures. Nothing has jumped out yet, but I do have a feeling something will point us in the right direction this time.â
âRight, pass us some then,âÂ
âOf course your majesty.â
âFuck off, man,â You snickered and snatched the pile from her hand. âOh, you know the family that lives beside Mandy?â
âHuh? Beside Mandy?â
âYeah, the family that lives next door?â
âNo one has lived in that house for like 4 years,â Ellie blinked, confusion written all over her face.
âOh, she said they were decorating or something earlier, there was banging and thatâs what she told me.âÂ
âJoel knows more than me about anyone, Iâll ask him later, see if anyoneâs moved in since the other family,â Ellie promised with a tired smile.
âThanks, El,â A chip that you flicked hit her in the chin and you held back a laugh when her eyes widened and she suddenly scowled at you. âSorry, you looked like you needed something to cheer you up. Did you sleep much last night?âÂ
âA few hours, better than none, right?â The smile she gave you didnât reach her face. Everyone is like that lately and you sadly understood why. The community wasnât exactly whole right now.Â
âWant to watch a movie tonight?â You suggested as you ate some more chips.
âWhat one?â
âUhm, you pick, I donât mind which one.â
âDonât wanna freak anyone out or anything,â
âWhat is it?â
âThereâs someone in the background of the picture you and Abby took the night before, well, you know, you canât see much but Itâs someone for sure,â Jesse mumbled and slid the picture over to you.Â
The background is blurry, you notice that much at first but as you squint your eyes just a little more, a black silhouette is something you can pick out. Standing behind what you can only assume Is one of the trees just across the ways of the pond both you and Abby spent a lot of time at. âItâs too dark, I canât fucking pick out who it is,â You huffed. âDo you think It might be who threatened her?â
âAnd risk getting caught when sheâs with you? Knowing damn well youâd knock their teeth out?â Ellie laughed.
âAnythingâs possible, El.â
âLetâs say this is them, how do we find out who it is?â
âCould host a small get-together tomorrow night here, remembering Abby or something, and we all write something for her, see if someone slips up and exposes themselves?â Jesse suggests, looking between you and Ellie.Â
âIt could work,â Both you and Ellie answered at the same time. âBut how would we know who it is if they turn up and say something bad?â
âNo idea, but weâll figure it out as we go. Havenât we always done that?â He smiled and pushed the rest of the pictures which were of no use back into the box before putting the lid on. âWeâve always had each other's back, thatâs not going to change.âÂ
âIâll do whatever It takes If It means weâre one step closer to finding Abby.â You agreed.Â
âAlright, youâve pulled my leg, Iâm in too.â Ellie dramatically huffed but the smile on her lips gave her away. âLetâs watch that sappy romance movie,â
âWhich one?â
âAbbyâs favorite.â
âYou, Ellie Williams, want to watch Love Actually? Willingly?â
âWhy are you saying my name like that?! Yes, letâs watch it.â She scoffed and slapped the back of your head when she stood up. âBesides, you and Abby can bully me all you want for wanting to watch it when sheâs back with us.âÂ
âSheâll never let you live it down, you know what right?â
âYeah, but Itâs worth It, she is too.â Ellie winked.Â
â
The following evening dawned on you quicker than you would have liked. All of you were on edge. The picture, the missing charms, the truth that someone didnât like Abby had you, Ellie and Jesse looking around the bar with caution.Â
The remembrance of Abby had the all clear, everyone helped and chipped in where they could. Jerry was over the moon when you told him that you guys were doing this for her. Maybe in hopes that it would bring you one step closer, or maybe one step closer to her coming home.  Â
Thursday, 6th June 2015Â
âAbby, you look beautiful, why are you panicking?â Abby was sitting on the edge of her bed, fumbling with her bracelet yet not looking at you. âHey, Abs, whatâs up?â You crouched in front of her and took her hands into yours with a soft smile.
âI donât feel beautiful,â She admitted sadly.
âOh, Abby, you are beautiful. Everything about you is beautiful, your soul is perfect and stunning. You are the most beautiful person in the world. Your hair is beautiful, your smile is beautiful, your pretty eyes are stunning,â Her sniffle caused you to pause, reach your hand up and wipe it away. âEverything about you is beautiful.â
âReally?â
Cupping her face between your hands, you press you lips against her forehead and smile. âYes, really, you are so fuckinâ beautiful.â You whispered into her skin. âI promise, love.â
How could you not see the pain she was holding back, behind the little glint in her eye?
âTo Abby!â
Jerryâs voice brought you back to reality, smiled at everyone who raised a glass in her honor and nodded to himself as he walked down the small steps. âThank you for coming,â He murmured to a few of the older couples who gave him a gentle hug and a soft reassurance. âI know that Abby would have loved to see you guys together again.âÂ
On edge, you looked around the bar slowly, trying to pick out anyone that was acting weird or unusually suspicious. Thatâs how you looked at most people these days, picking them out one by one, wondering if they had done or said anything to Abby the night she vanished. You spotted Ellie doing the same on the other side of the room, taking small unsuspicious glances at everyone who came in and left. âHere,â
To your left, Jesse was holding a beer towards you, which you took with a soft thank you, and leaned against the wall with you. âAnyone catch your eye yet?â
âNot yet, everyone seems to be kind, and talking to Jerry, cheering him up and stuff,â You mumbled between sips, eyes still moving around as each person moves around before you. âI donât think they would hide, we know most people here, if anyoneâs missing, weâll know.â
âAnd if they do choose to miss something that is important to the community, then they are hiding something.â Jesse added.Â
âExactly, I donât think theyâre stupid enough to let it slip, know that we know something.â
âDid that guy who told you she was arguing with someone tell you anything else or?â
âDeadend, he just smiles at me all weird like now when I see him.â You grimaced and took a big gulp of your beer.Â
âItâs that friendly smile you have.â
âEat a dick.â You laughed.
In the middle of the bar, there was a box, which gave people to write notes, poems, or even just one word, so that when Abby did come back home, she would have kind things to read, and hopefully it would be able to cheer everyone else up when they read a few of them nearing the end of the night. You thought the idea was a good one when Jerry asked you about it this morning. He enjoyed having your input when it came to his daughter.Â
You wrote something simple, not overdone, but a little i miss you and i love you more than anything. It meant more than anything, Abby would know that if she was here right now, reading them. You always noticed the way she would blush and look away when you would tell her you love her before you either hung up after being on a phone call with her for hours, or even when you left her house. âI love you.â You murmured, folded the piece of paper and pressed you lips to it.Â
Ellie smiled from across the room.
She always found it amusing it took you years to know you were indeed madly in love with your best friend.Â
âHey,â
You almost gave yourself whiplash with how fast you turned around to find Dina looking at you and nervously fumbling with her fingers. âDina, hey,â You smiled awkwardly.Â
âDo you hate me? It would make sense if you did, with how I pulled away from you all, but with Abby going missing, I just got scared, and being around you guys made me miss her so much.â Dina rushed out.
âI donât hate you,â You reassured her quietly. âI understand though, itâs okay, we all deal with it differently, but I donât hate you, none of us do.â
âIs Ellie okay?â She asked hesitantly.
âI donât think so, but sheâs getting there,â You admitted truthfully. âYou should talk to her.â
âWouldnât that be awkward?â
âNothingâs awkward unless you make it awkward.â You winked with a soft laugh.
âRight, Iâll go and see her, if she starts freaking out, you should probably come over or something.â Dina smiled.
âWill do.â
If it wasnât for the fact you were already looking at Ellie, you would have had a stroke when you heard the loud crashing of her falling off the chair when she noticed Dina making her way towards her. Snorting under your breath, you shook your head, pushed yourself off the wall and made a beeline straight for the beer. âUsual?â Elaine, the older woman who took over the bar after her husband passed, smiled when you were quick to nod and slump yourself against the counter. âYou look tired, you sleepinâ?â
âWhen I can, which isnât much,â You mumbled softly with a subtle shrug. âBut what can you do? Sleep is the last thing I need right now.â
âMaybe you need just a little bit to find her.â
Pushing the beer into your direction, she laughed at the way your lips parted as you grabbed it; ready to ask her how she knew. âJerry told me earlier when he came here to set up. Itâs a good thing, you know? Abby adored you, and I know how much you care about her.â
âI seem to be getting nowhere when I feel like mâfinally getting somewhere.â
âThereâs more out there than meets the eye, Honey,â Elaine smiled. âYou just have to look closer.â
âWhat do youââ
âY/N?â Jerry called out.
God fucking damn it.
At his voice, you turn your body slightly, almost stiffly and raise an eyebrow at him. You quietly excuse yourself from the conversation you got yourself into with Elaine when he waved you over, and took a couple of strides towards him, placing your almost empty bottle of beer on the table beside you. âWhatâs up?â
âI was just going through some of the notes, you know, the ones people left for Abs, and I found this. What does it mean?â He explained, slightly rushed and shoved a piece of paper into your hands with worry written all over his face. âDid someone hurt her? Take her from me? Why?â
Your eyebrows furrow as you look down at the slip of paper in your hands, looking back up at him confused. âWhat is it?âÂ
âRead it, Itâll make more sense if you see it.â
Doing as youâre told, you donât have time to acknowledge the small fact that your hands start to tremble as you unfold the little note with caution. Your lips part, body tensing as your eyes widen as you read over the note slowly. Not fully understanding. âSomeone put this here?â You asked, voice cracking. âWhen?â
âIâm not sure, so many people have been leaving notes. I wouldnât have been able to catch who.â Jerry shook his head, and gripped the edge of the table tightly. âIf someoneâs hurt her, mâgonna kill them. Mâgonna kill them, Y/Nâ
âNot before us,â You murmured, already looking around the room. âWho was in charge of the box?â
âMe, and a couple of others, but this is the only bad one.â
âYouâve looked at the rest?â
âOf course.â
âAlright, put it somewhere else, out of sight from everyone. If this is the only bad one, then itâs possible theyâre just trying to scare us, making up a lie about whatâs happened to her. Sheâs fine, okay? Abby is strong, and weâre gonna find her.â You nodded. You werenât sure who you were trying to reassure more, you or Jerry? Both of you? The whole town?
âWhat are you going to do?â He blinked.
âFigure it out. Thatâs what mâgonna do.â
The night rushed along slowly as you, and a bunch of others made your way out of the bar, cigarette hanging between your lips and a cold beer in your hands. The note played on your mind angrily, eating and chewing away at your brain, almost trying to claw its way out of your head as you inhaled hit after hit of your cigarette. Who here hates Abby enough to hurt her? Take her away? She was nice to everyone, always offering to help someone who needed it, never letting the older people carry stuff too heavy, Abby wouldnât hurt a fly, so why would they feel the need to hurt her? Take her away from where she loves? From the people she adores? It doesn't make sense.Â
The longer you stood there, practically taking Ellieâs thought into consideration, pulling out cigarette after cigarette, the darkness seemed to loom and lurk more creepy than any other night. Almost like it was mocking you, judging you from afar as you tried to wrap your head around everything. Even the journal pages still donât make sense to you and itâs been over a week since the first. Itâs like she left, and suddenly youâre trying to figure out a really fucked up riddle in order to get you prize, the prize being Abby once everything slots into place like a puzzle.
âLetâs get you home, Honey. Night time around here has become a little scarier than before.â You spot a mother wrapping her daughter up on her scarf and jacket before holding onto her hand tightly after she places a kiss on her forehead. âStay close to Mommy and youâll be okay, alright?â
You wish Abby stayed close to you.Â
You watch the family walk away down the path, the lights casting a shadow around them. Like a possessed child, the shadow like a demon hanging on by a thread as they were no longer in your peripheral each step they took until they were around the corner. Gone just like Abby.Â
As you dropped your cigarette on the ground, you caught something behind one of the trees when you looked back up, lurking in the darkness and your body suddenly tensed on the spot. Did Abby feel like this? Did she feel like her entire soul left her body when she knew someone was watching her? Following her?Â
âHey!â You shouted, dropping your bottle in the process as you walked over to them, or trying to. It seemed like you had slightly spooked them, not aware you were staring right at them. âHey!â This time you started running as you saw the rustle of the leaves, the snapping of twigs under their feet. âStop running away!â You called out, pushing the branches out of your way.Â
Were you really doing this right now? Running after someone who could easily just kill you?
In your eyes, you could see the outline of their figure under the moonlight, shimming between trees, jumping over treeâs thatâve been left to fend for themselves over the years, and even though the pain and burn in your legs were starting to ache more and more the longer you ran after them, you couldnât stop. You needed to do this no matter the outcome. âStop running away from me!â You shouted, jumping over the same tree as they did. âI just want to talk! Thatâs all! Stop fuckinâ running!â You huffed.
You didnât see the branch hanging in front of you, or the rock on the floor, not until tripped, your face smacked into the branch harshly and landed on the floor with a loud thud. âFuck,â You groaned, cupping your nose quickly with a wince. âFuck!â You yelled, spitting out the dirt.Â
Rolling yourself over slowly, you puffed out a sigh as your eyes fluttered open; the midnight sky lurked down at you, almost inviting it to eat you whole. If it could reach out and grab you, you would be the darknessâs first victim. The chitter of insects in between the long grass had your ears perking up as you sat up. Cupping the back of your head, you hissed and screwed your eyes shut tightly and pulled yourself up off the floor.Â
Looking around, even though it was no use and they were probably gone already, you stumbled towards one of the trees and leaned against it tiredly. But all things turn you angry at some point.Â
All you could really think about the fact you still hadnât found Abby the longer you slumped yourself there, and that was enough to anger you enough until you repeatedly punched at the oak, over and over again until your knuckles were completely red, bits of wood stuck in your skin, but you didnât care, if you donât have Abby, what was the point?
âFuck you!â Your scream echoed eerily.
The flap of bird wings rang out loudly around you.
It took you an hour to trek back to the town. You held your hand against your chest, your nose stung like a bitch but this was the last thing on your mind as you stumbled your way through the crowds of drunk people, not giving you a single glance or worrying about the fact your nose was still bleeding, you probably broke a few knuckles. âJess, have you seen Y/N?â You heard Ellieâs voice but couldnât see her.Â
âY/N? No, I havenât seen her for a couple hours, now that Iâm thinking about it.âÂ
âShit, alright, uhm,âÂ
The sound of loud crashing caused both of them to look straight at you as you stumbled over one of the tables. âI think we found her?â Jesse laughed.
âShit, Y/N?â Ellieâs eyes widened at the sight of your bloody nose and rushed over to your side; not before watching you struggle 4 times to stand on your feet. âFuck, what the fuck happened to you?â She scoffed, pulling you up carefully.
âSomeone,â You groaned and slumped your head against her shoulder. âSomeone was watching, through the trees, ran after them but hit my head, broke my nose, I think? And then I lost them, so I punched a tree, I think my knuckles are broken.â You explained with a slight slur in your voice. âBut mâfine, just need to sit down for a second.â
âThatâs a lot of I thinks, we canât leave you alone for five fuckinâ minutes.â Ellie muttered under her breath and wrapped her arm around your waist tightly. âLetâs get you to mine, Joelâs out with Tommy so he wonât ask questions.âÂ
With the help of her and Jesse, you made it to Ellieâs house in one piece, well minus your dignity that the tree smacked out of you, but you still made it without another fall. They had managed to patch up your knuckles, and stopped the bleeding of your nose, ignoring every curse and wince that fell from between your bloody lips; telling you that it was your own fault for going without some kind of help or backup. âSo who did you see?â Jesse asked, dropping the dirty rags in the bin and turning to face you again.
âI was drinking my beer, and then I saw someone behind the trees, if this is the same person who was watching Abby, I can tell you it would have freaked anyone outââ
âSays the one who ran after them.â Ellie scoffed from beside you.
âYou were talkinâ to Dina, and Jesse was, well Jesse was where he usually goes, which is where? I donât know.â You glared at the pair of them. âBut mâhere, no?â
âLuckily.â Ellie sighed and pulled the tissue from out of your nose carefully. âWhat if something else seriously bad happened to you? And no one was there to get you?â
âMânot going anywhereââ
âYou donât fuckinâ know that! You canât just disappear without telling one of us. Thatâs not fair.â
The panic and worry in Ellieâs eyes is something you havenât seen since Abby went missing. She didnât talk about how she felt, but her eyes and face did, which is why your shoulder sagged and you nodded slowly. âI know, El, mâsorry, okay?â You smiled sadly.
âFor what itâs worth, this whole lookââ She pointed to your entire face with a laugh. âIs so worth it. Mâgonna tell Abby you risked breaking your knuckles and nose for her.â
âAnd sheâll ignore me for a weekââ
âA week? She will ignore you for a solid 5 seconds before sheâs asking you to cuddle her.â Jesse laughed with a slow head shake. âDid you find anything else out? Minus the dumb injuries?â
âThereâs one thing Jerry showed me.â
âWhat is it?â
Reaching into your back pocket with a quiet groan, you pulled the slip of paper out and handed it to Ellie, who was watching you closely. âThatâs all that happened tonight.â
Unfolding it, exactly like you did earlier tonight, Ellieâs eyebrows furrow into a tight frown almost and nothing comes out of her mouth when opens it and instead she looks back at you with wide eyes. âThis happened tonight?â
âLet me see,â Jesse held his hand out and took it from her. His eyes widen too. âHow didnât we notice? How many people were going to that box?â
âMânot sure.â
Does a domino effect really have to happen in my life? You thought.
Ellie, whoâs usually the one to be the first to ask whatâs next, doesnât do that, instead she looks at you and frowns. âYou need to rest, If Jesse has to leave, I can figure out whatâs next for this sudden murder club search party, but you need to get some sleep, and I wonât take no for an answer. Got it?â
âElââ
âI said got it?â
Slumping against the bed, you simply nodded like a lost puppy and folded your arms over your chest, completely forgetting about your broken knuckles you winced. âFine, but if you find anything, wake me up, yeah? Please?âÂ
âIf youâre knocked out cold, then no, but I will if you arenât.â
âThe tree already knocked her out coldâ Jesse chimed in with a sudden laugh.
âBoth of you go fuck yourself!â

Brenda, poor woman was reading through one of her own books, jolted in her spot and looked up when the bell on the door rang, and held back a sigh at the sight of you and Ellie stumbling in through the small door with curses and grumbles. âBrenda! My favourite lady!â
âEllie, may I remind you of the time you almost broke my window? we arenât even acquaintancesâ
âI paid for it to be fixed, didnât I?!â Ellie moaned and kicked the floor childishly. âCan we look at that book you keep when people loan or bring back books? We have something we want to compare,â
âFor?â
âJust something we are working on, please? Itâll only take a couple minutes,â Your friend begged, leaned over the counter and pouted. âI will even ask Joel if he will take you on that date!â
âDate?! Excuse meââ
âYouâre in love with Joel, do this for me, and then Iâll get you that date with himâ
âFine, but donât knock anything over like last time, It took me an hour to fix everything.â She scowled and walked away.Â
âYouâre the best!â Ellie shouted after her.Â
The flight flickered on, and the sounds of loud banging could wake anyone up, even the small insects that lurk in the long grass outside in the wilderness. âNeed to take these back, hope you enjoyed those pathetic reads.â They mumbled, snatching the books from the dirty floor and scoffed. âDonât understand whatâs so special about them or you. Also, I can't afford to borrow anymore so this is the last of them for you.â
Just as fast it went on, the light was gone and it felt even colder once the door slammed shut.Â
Hunching over the counter, Ellie spots the thick yet old book and grabs it with both hands, a soft grunt slipping past her lips before pulling it over the counter and dropping it on the oak, the loud bang causing you to flinch and flick her ear. âOw!âÂ
âThatâs for trying to give me a heart attack.â You scoffed and slapped her shoulder. âSo this was your big plan? Look through the names until one stands out?â
âYeah or until we find one that matches, I guess?â
âBrenda, I know iâm late with returning these books butâ Hey!â Mandy halted in her steps mid way through the door when she spotted you and Ellie leaning on the counter, looking through something. âLoaning another book, Y/N?â
âOh, no not today, just finding something for Joel.â You lied, Ellie almost snickering behind her hand at your blatant lie. âYou read them already?â
âOh yeah! I had some free time after you left last night, really enjoyed themâÂ
âWhat was your favourite?â
The question caught her off guard as her lips formed into a pout as she thought about it. âUh, I really liked Pride and Prejudice, the others were boring but that one was amazing.â
No one in this town apart from me and Abby love that book. You thought.
âAh, well mâglad you enjoyed it. Do you still want to borrow my copy of the shining?âÂ
Mandy chewed her inner cheek before nodding a little too quickly and smiled again. âYeah, of course! Those stupid neighbors finally stopped decorating so I can probably get a night in to read some of it!â
âMandy, hello Love.â Brenda appeared with a mug in her hand and a plate of biscuits. âReturning them already? That was fast.â
Placing the stack of books on the counter, Mandy simply gave her a warm smile, one that was slowly starting to creep you out, and tucked a strand of hair behind her ear. âCanât afford to borrow anymore for a while, my brain is fried with all the stories Iâve read this week.â
âNo worries, Honey, just sign in the books you borrowed and theyâll be more for you next time when you do want to read again. Girls, can she use that for a second and then you can get back to whatever you were doing.â
âA date is on the line, Brenda, donât rush meâ
âIâll rush you both out of that door,â Brenda smirked and the words died in throat once Ellie nodded her head quickly, picked up the book and practically shoved it in shocked Mandyâs hand with a stutter of words. âThank you.â
âDo you have a pen I could borrow?â
Reaching for the one beside you, you hold it out towards her, which she takes with a soft thank you, places the book back on the counter and doodles her name onto the sheet of paper. âThank you again, Brenda. You always have a really good selection of books!â
âYouâre more than welcome, Love.â
âSee you later, Y/N?â
âWhatâs happening later?â Ellie eyed her.
âItâs that party thing, dunno if mâgoing though,â You smile and shoved your hands into your pockets. âIf I do, I assume youâre going?â
âYes! The only time I get to be free and myself, I guess. So Iâll be there. If you do change your mind and come, Iâll see you there?â
âFor sure.â Another tight lipped smile.Â
Mandy took her leave not long after, leaving you and Ellie to your little search once more and Brenda took herself into a little corner of the shop to what you could only assume was to read one of her books. âNow that sheâs gone,â Ellie trailed off.
Opening the book again, you brush your fingers down the list of people until it lands on hers; furrowing your eyebrows when you look at the book in front of you again, you lean your face closer and look at the signature a little longer, for far too long until youâre shoving your hand in your back pocket, rummaging around for the slip of paper you and Ellie took last night. âWhat are you doing?â Ellie laughed, watching you struggle.
Pride and Prejudice âŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚâŚ Mandy âĄÂ
âLook at her name,â You murmured, pulling the slip of paper out.
âWhos? Mandyâs?â
âThe way sheâs spelt it.â
Once you unfolded the paper, your eyes flickered between the slip between your fingers, and the name in the book, Ellie doing the same, having to lean over you. âWait,â She paused, snatching it from you and taking a look for herself.Â
Ellie looks at her name, and then at the note again;
ABBY DESERVED WHAT SHE GOT. âĄ
âDid she justââ
âThe fuckinâ heart, Ellie.â
âWait, is she really that fucking insane?â Ellie looked at the slip still in shock. âAre you joking me? Sheâs been under our nose this entire time?â
âSo, the banging I heard?â
âWasnât anyone fucking decorating thatâs for sure.â
âBefore we jump to conclusions, letâs just go get something to eat, mâstarving, and go through what we have. Anyone could write hearts next to their name.â
âIn the exact same way she does it? I doubt it.â Ellie murmured, tore the page out of the book quickly and stuffed it in her jacket pocket. Glaring at your stare. âWhat? Brenda wonât fuckinâ miss it.â
Shuffling out of the door, you and Ellie spot Mandy happily skipping away, and the sight has your friend scowling ad mumbling incoherently under her breath, âWhyâs she so fuckinâ happy all the time? Has she never dealt with sadness or hurt in her life?âÂ
Nudging her shoulder with yours as you both walk, you shook your head. âApparently not. Look at me, depressed as fuck.â
âSame,â Ellie looked at you before you both burst out into a laugh. âMan, if sheâs somehow done anything to be the reason Abby went missing, mâgonna kill her. You know that right? I donât care what you say, Iâll do it.â
âEllieââ
âNo, whoever took Abby from us, is going six feet under. You canât stop me.â
âLetâs feed you, that monster is hungryââ
âY/N, mânot joking, this isnât a jokeââ
âI know, and thatâs whatâs scaring me right now, Ellie.â
Pushing past you with a grumble at your words, Ellieâs quick to find a seat in the far corner, out of the way from people, and ushers you to hurry up. âIâll be right with you, Honey, just have to get a few orders out of the way.â The old woman smiled from behind the counter.
âNo worries!â
Unzipping your jacket, and placing it on the back of your chair, you sit down opposite Ellie and really look at her. Sheâs frowning, which means sheâs deep in thought again, and that only means sheâs planning something, something that you arenât sure is supposed to scare you or make you happy. The bags under her eyes are much darker than they were last week, so thatâs a clue sheâs not been sleeping no matter how many times sheâs told you she has been. Her lips are in a tight line. Even her smile lines are vanishing. âAnd then I thinkâ Why are you lookinâ at me like that?â She mumbled, catching you staring.Â
âSânothing, you just look exhausted,â You offered a soft smile. âWhat are we eating?â
âIâll just share with you, order whatever.â
Ellie was always a picky eater, well she says she is but always steals any of the food you make or buy, and went with something simple when it was your turn to order food; a bowl of chips, salsa and a chicken sandwich. ââAnd then we have the note, if that crazy psycho took the book out last week, then Abbyâs alive, which means she has to be here somewhere, and weâre just not looking hard enoughââ
âThe woman at the bar, who got me a beer, told me that we need to look closer, so you might be right,â You nodded, munching on your chips. âShe might know something, but doesnât want to get too close to it, I donât blame her, this whole thing has been freakinâ me the fuck out.â
âSo Abbyâs here somewhere?â Ellie took a handful of chips and ate them slowly. âThatâs what weâre going with?â
âYeah, but where? We know this place like the back of our hands. We would have found her already by now.â
âThatâs where mâconfused because I donât know. I have no idea where she could beââ
âY/N, Ellie! Iâm so glad I found you guys!â Brendaâs voice rings out.
The pair of you turn in your seats, and look at her with your mouths full with food, and staring like a deer in headlights. âBrenda, miss us already? Itâs been 30 minutes.â You coughed, swallowed your food and wiped your face. âWhatâs wrong?â You asked when you noticed her worried look.
âThereâs something you need to see, I havenât told anyone else yet, apart from you guys.â She rushed out, pulling a book out of her bag and placing it on the table. âI was going through them, like I always do just to make sure she didnât rip any of the pages, some people have done it, and I found this.â
âPride and Prejudice?â You blinked.Â
âJust look at the back. please.â
Looking over at Ellie, who was just watching with confusion written all over her face and still eating, you open the book and skip through the pages, until youâre on the last page before the back. âDid you hide spiders here? To scare me?â You laughed nervously.Â
âItâs about Abby.â Was all she could stutter out.Â
Once the words fell from her mouth, your hands dropped the book on the final page, and all of you looked down at it. Staring at it like the horribly written words were going to jump out of the page and eat you. âShe took this book out last week.â
MâŚ.Mandy
CrazyâŚÂ
Abby
âIs thatââ Ellie swallowed and locked eyes with you. âSheâs stillââ
âAlive.â

âSo whatâs the plan?â Ellie mumbled into your ear, the 3 of you watching a very happy Mandy dancing with her friends, and snatched your beer from your hand. âWe corner her?â
âNot here,â You shook your head. âToo obvious. She would see it coming.â
âYou think she knows we know?â Jesse asked.Â
âI donât think so, If she knows that we know, I donât think she would have shown up tonight,â You grabbed a handful of chips and shoved them into your mouth. âBesides, this way, we can observe her, try catching her saying or doing anything that could expose her.â
âWeâve been looking through so much shit for the last month, why canât I just hit her?â Ellie grumbled and slumped in the chair like a scolded child with a pout on her face.Â
âLook what happened to Y/N when she went against a tree,â
âJesse! Stop bringinâ up that fucking tree.â You groaned and threw your head back.
âItâs funny!â He laughed.Â
âYour poor nose didnât think so,â Ellie cooed playfully and kissed your cheek. âDonât tell Abby, she will actually kill me for that.â
âLeave my nose alone!â
Amongst your conversation with your friends, you hadnât notice Mandy walking over to your table until she slid into the empty chair beside Jesse and thatâs when all the laughter died down. âWho died?â She giggled, words slightly slurred. âIâm just coming to see how you are doing.â
âMâgood,â
âBeen better.â
âI think Iâm gonna get another drink, Ellie? Y/N? You guys want anything?â
âTwo beers!â Ellie cheered.
Fumbling with the bowl of chips, your eyes flicker between Jesse at the bar, and Mandy who was happily sipping her drink through a straw, not worried about the fact you were either about to lose your shit, or throw a chair at her. âSo, howâs the search going?â
âSâfine,â You shrugged, not wanting to give her too much without her catching on that you knew. âKeep hitting deadends, but itâs fine besides that.â
âYouâre smart, youâll figure it out.â
Ellie makes a face of disgust at her, her need and want to just throw something at this girl gets stronger every time she opens her mouth with something ridiculous. âIs Jesse making the beers or something? Why is he taking so long?â
âEllie, half the town is here,â You laughed and threw a chip at her. âBe patient.â
âItâs hard to have that when you live here.â She grumbled and leant her head on your shoulder. âWake me up when heâs back.â
âYou got it, El.â You laughed.Â
You hadnât expected her to actually fall asleep, but when you feel her body slumping more into your side not even 10 minutes later, youâre quick to wrap your arm around her to stop her from falling off the chair and onto the floor. Nor do you notice the look of annoyance on Mandyâs face, still sipping her drink. âI would have guessed Jerry would have been helping you search for Abby. Did you say that was her name?â
The question catches you off guard, slightly offended she even thought of it let alone asked it; Jerry spent countless months of time over several months searching for her. Never eating or sleeping, he stayed awake in hopes she would walk through the door at any given moment. âHow long have you lived here?â You found yourself asking and cocking your head to the side.
âHow long have I lived here? Oh, since I was like 8 or 9. Why?â
âThen youâd know we look out for our own. Same thing happened when a little boy went missing for 3 days when I turned 16, we all went looking for him and brought him home when we found him. It doesnât matter if we have distaste or disagreements with someone, if something happens in our community, we help each other, we search, and we donât rest until we find them.â You explained slowly, eyeing her up. âJerry doesnât sleep, just because you donât see him asking every single person where his daughter is, doesnât mean heâs not looking. Jerry would kill everyone in his way to get to his daughter. Thatâs how much he gives a shit about her. We all do.â
âWould you?â Itâs like your words didnât phase her.Â
âWould I what?â
âKill someone to get her?â
Looking down at Ellie, your eyebrow raises just slightly, and itâs back to normal before she can blink and when you chuckle, her skin crawls. âSânot me they should be worried about. When we find whoever took her, mâgonna have to keep Ellie on a tight leash or sheâll be like a rabid dog looking for something to chew,â You paused and inhaled deeply when your eyes met. âBut I would, if you want the truth. I would kill anyone if it meant I could have Abby back.â
âDo you have it in you?â
âIf the right person fucks with my family, yeah,â The smirk you gave her caused Mandy to shift around in her seat comfortably. A sense of terror seeps into the cracks of her skin and travels up her spine. âI wouldnât hesitate to put a bullet between their fuckinâ eyes, unless Ellie gets to it before I do.â
âMake it seem like a horror movie.â She giggled.
âI think weâre scarier than anything in a horror movie youâve seen before, Mandy.â
On a note, she hadnât realised or seemed to have noticed just how bold and eerie you got when you would bluntly stare. Like Ellie, Mandy never understood what you were thinking about when sitting there, zoning out like a zombie. At some points she expects to start seeing cartoon bubbles with those pictures appearing by the side of your head. âWhatâs the scariest movie youâve seen?â
âThe life mâfucking livinâ. Thatâs what.â
âYour life isnât thatââ
A tray of beers enters your vision as you look up to find Jesse side eyeing Mandy, and then looking at a sleeping Ellie on your shoulder. âAt least sheâs sleeping. What were you guys talking about?â He asked, wrapping his lips around the bottle and gulping down the liquid.
âI was just telling Mandy that mânot afraid to kill whoever took Abby from us.â
âRemember when you tried to kill that guy who stole your chips a while back?â Jesse smirked, subtly waiting for Mandyâs reaction.
âFor stealing chips?â She choked out, pushing her chair out, picking up her almost empty glass and rising to her feet.Â
âOh yeah, the guyâs terrified of me.â You smiled.Â
âI would have been too if you tried to kill me for taking your chips. I need to get another drink. Speaking of, do you want more chips?â
âYouâre alright, your friends look like they miss youâ
âTheyâre all drunk, but Iâll see you.â
Once she left, you finally let out a laugh. âReally Jesse? When did I try to kill a man for stealing my chips?â You shook your head and took your beer.Â
âI tried to see if it would get a reaction out of her, not sure if it worked though,â He shrugged, once again taking a longer glance at Ellie. âHas she been asleep for a long?â
âNot a long time, but she just fell asleep when she came over here, I thought she was joking until she practically fell into me and I donât have it in me to wake her up, not when sheâs barely slept much since we started all this.â You murmured and rubbed her back slowly.
âI can hear you both talking, stop being so loud.â Ellie grumbled against your shoulder and peeled her eyes open slowly. âIs she gone? Can I get the fuck up now?â
âWere you fakinâ that?â Your hand slapped the back of her head gently; which she laughed at when she sat up completely. âAfter tonight, youâre getting at least 15 hours sleep.â
âSays you, you havenât slept in like 10 years.â
âI take naps when neededâ
âNot enough, those dark circles under your eyes finally match that bruised nose.â
âEnough with my nose! And the tree!â You warned when Jesse opened his mouth. âLet me live it down for fuck sake.â
âI donât think I can, the story was hilarious,â The brunette smirked, hands running down her face as she yawned into the palm of her hand. âSo, did she start freaking out when Jesse said you tried to kill someone?âÂ
âNot like we hoped.âÂ
Once the clock hit 11pm, Ellie was the first to notice Mandy slipping out of the doors, with a few of her friends following closely behind. âSheâs leaving, letâs go.â
âGo where?â
âFollowing her. She wrote the note, she doesnât fuckinâ read books, she canât even read the fact you arenât interested in her, and sheâs obsessed with you for a reason none of us know. She knows something, if you donât want to follow her, Iâll go alone.â Ellie rambled on and she jumped to her feet.Â
âLike fuck youâre going alone. Jesse open your mouth about a certain something, I will hit you.â You warned again, looking at him with a harsh glare. âNot a single word about it ever again, you guys got it?â
âI was just going to say that Abby owes you two kisses for the black eye you got.â He smiled innocently. âRisked your whole face for her. Props to you.â
âCan we talk about you and Abby flirting after?â
âRight, letâs go then.â
You kept your distance, not wanting to give anything away. A part of you did feel slightly uncomfortable with the fact you were literally following someone, but the other part of your brain was screaming at you. She knows what happened to Abby. She knows something. It wasnât like you could ignore that gnawing feeling in your mind. âWhat are we going to do if we find something?â Ellie asked, huddling close to you.
âI guess weâll cross that bridge when we get to it?â You murmured with each cautious step. âIf sheâs as crazy as that note proves then we canât just throw ourselves at her and attack her.â
Hiding behind the tree when she suddenly drops her purse, Ellie grabs onto the back of your shirt tightly as you all watch Mandy scrambling to pick it up and stumbling her way up the path towards her house; almost tripping over in the process and if it wasnât for the fact your hand quickly came up and cupped Ellieâs mouth, the laugh she let out would have gotten you all caught. âShut the fuck up.â You warned.
âYes, Boss.â
âEllieâs gonna be the reason we all die.â Jesse grumbled, sneakily running over towards the other tree that was closer to her house. âI think sheâs gone in the house now, you can move.â He waved you over, still looking at the window.
âDonât laugh, or youâll get us caught.â
âGod, I wonât laugh again unless she falls out of the fuckinâ door.â Ellie grumbled from behind you, still using your body as a shield. âOr hits a treeââ
âEllie, I will tie you to a tree and leave you out here. I said donât bring it up.âÂ
âCâmon, you and that tree have a pure love relationship now.â
âMâgonna tell Joel about what you did with that girl behind his house if you donât shut your mouth right now.â You warned, turning to look at her.
âYou wouldnât.â
âI would, now shut the hell up.â
Stalking up the steps quietly, you keep your hold on Ellie tight when she stumbles up one of the steps and Jesse was the one who had to place his hand over her mouth this time when she went to yelp. âDo not get us caught, Ellie, Iâll never forgive you.â
From here, you could see Mandy in the kitchen, filling her glass up with whatever she chose to drink tonight, taking a sip as she leant against the counter and her shoulders sagged. That sudden loud banging had you all flinching in your spots and Mandy straightened herself up. âQuit it! You do that all the fuckin time, itâs driving me nuts!âÂ
âSheâs already nuts,â Ellieâs voice muffled behind Jesseâs hand.Â
âShould have killed you when I had the damn chance, but no! Everyone gives too much of a shit about you!â
Carefully, without dropping Ellie or causing Jesse to fall over, your hand lightly grips onto the door handle, squeezing your eyes shut tightly as you turn it just enough to hear a soft click. âLetâs go.â You whispered, removing your hold reluctantly and stood up.
Pushing the door open wildly, Mandy stumbled back, almost falling over the table when You, Ellie and Jesse stormed in through her front door. âY/N?â
âWhere the fuck is she!?â Youâre suddenly in her face in a flash and fists balled up by your sides.Â
âWhat happened to not throwing ourselves at her and attacking her?â Ellie grumbled quietly from beside Jesse under her breath.Â
âI donâtâ I donât know what youâre talking about,â Mandy stammered, eyes wide and glossy.
âOh, you donât?â You laughed sarcastically and shook your head. âYou know exactly what mâfucking talking about.âÂ
âI really donâtââ
âYou can drop the innocent act, you insane little bitch.â Ellie seethed from beside you.
âY/N, I really donât know what youâre talking about.â Mandy sobbed, backed into a corner and not knowing an escape route.
Her breath hitched and she gasped when youâre suddenly gripping her face between your hands tightly; looking down at her angrily. Angrier than sheâs ever seen before. âNo? Then fuck what fuck is this?âÂ
The sheet of paper hits her square in the chest, and Mandy scrambles to catch it, her shaky hands fumble to open it, and as her eyes catch onto whatâs on the page, you finally see the way her jaw clenches and her face relaxes. âShe never deserved you,â She scoffed, finally letting her guard down. âThat stupid little bitch deserved everything that happened.â
âThe fuck did you say?âÂ
âShe had it coming. If she didnât keep taking you away from me, telling you to ignore me, blowing off our datesââ
âWe went on one date!âÂ
âA date she kept telling you to miss, always listening to her, doing what she tells you, with her out of the way I could have you to myself.â She grinned.
Leaning closer to her, you laughed in her face. âYou still have nothing,â You murmured with a grimace. âThis makes me hate you more.âÂ
âNo you donât, you donât hate me.â Mandy shook her head and plastered on a smile. âNo,â
âAre you fucking stupid?â Ellie blinked, eyes going between you and then Mandy. âYouâre fucking crazy, obsessive, who would love that?â
âDina loved you, didnât she, Ellie, takes one obsessive bitch to know another?â
âHey,â Jesse warned, stepping in front of Ellie. âKeep her name out of your mouth.âÂ
âAh yes, Jesse, the other one. How does it feel knowing she loved you both yet still broke up with you when she had her fill?âÂ
âShut the fuck up,âÂ
âWhere is Abby?â You glared and gripped her face harder. âTell me where she is!âÂ
âSheâs gone! She was never here, I took care of her for us!âÂ
âThere is no us!âÂ
The fact sheâs not getting it makes you more angry, angrier than when you found out Abby went missing. âBut, I did this for you? Why canât you see that? Why canât you see I do everything for you?â
âI didnât ask you to take my best friend away from me! Iâm asking you to give her back to me!â
âSheâs not here! Why would she be here?!â
âDo not let her move,â You told them as you slowly took a couple of steps away from her. âIf either of you let her walk out that damn door, mâshooting you both.â With the stare you were giving them, they both knew you werenât kidding. You were scary when you were angry, thatâs not a secret.Â
Wandering into the living room, the same one you ate fucking dinner in, you halted in your steps with your arms folded over your chest. You werenât sure what you were looking for, but as you glanced around the room, you couldnât exactly find anything out of the ordinary, or even remotely suspicious. Maybe you had gotten it wrong? You were so sleep deprived that anyone could have written the note, Mandy canât be the only one to write hearts next to her name, right?
You were about to give up on this crazy plan; the crazy plan of yelling and screaming at Mandy until she told you what you wanted to hear, when the faintest scraping sound had caught your attention. It wasnât loud, but it was loud enough that you could hear it from where you were standing. Your eyebrows furrow and your body turns just slightly, head pointing in the direction of the cabinet opposite the bookshelf. âWhatâs that noise?â You asked to no one in particular.
âWhat noise?â Ellie quipped, cautiously keeping her eyes on Mandy, who was still slumped against the counter, and occasionally over to you where you stood. âI donât hear anythingââ
There it was again, the slight scraping sound, but only this time itâs a little louder.Â
Before you could take another step towards the cabinet, Mandy was suddenly moving around and pushing herself in front of you, but you werenât focused on her face, no, you were more focused on the gun pointed at your fuckinâ face. âI canât let you go through there,â She chuckled and rolled her eyes. âIf you just stopped looking, stopped asking people, begging people for help, then this wouldnât be happening. I did this for us, for you, why canât you see that?âÂ
âYou took her from me, from us, why would I love you for that?â You scoffed, stepped a little closer. âIf youâre gonna shoot me because I want to find her, then donât be a goddamn pussy and shoot me.âÂ
âSâŚShoot you?â Mandy stammered, quickly shaking her head. âNo! No, I donât want to shoot you, I love you!âÂ
âY/N,â Ellie warned, trying to figure out a way to help you, get you away from her. âY/N.â
âLet me have her, thatâs all I want, please justâ I need Abby, pleaseâ You begged, eyes fluttering closed as you felt the cool metal on your skin. âI just want my Abby back.âÂ
âThereâs no Abby left to bring back.â
âI really hate when people lie to me,â You whispered so quietly that she almost didnât catch it. âLiars are one of the worst things in the world, stop trying to piss me off even more.â
Youâre not sure what happens, one second youâre all standing there, and the next Ellieâs jumping at her, putting herself on the line to simply help you. âEllie!â You growled, watching her practically pushing Mandy onto the floor, the gun still safely in her hands.
âNow is really not the time to question what mâdoing. Go get her!â
Quickly, you manage to rush around the commotion, and slip back into the kitchen; keys, surely she keeps keys around here somewhere right? The kitchen is cold, plates in the sink that havenât been touched in weeks, and your mind starts to wonder again as you look around. Could Abby really be here? Locked away without any sunlight? What if she was here but itâs too late?
Pulling open one of the drawers, you let out a sigh of relief once you spot a set of keys, way too many now that you look at it. Who needs that many if they donât have secrets theyâd rather stay locked away? Snatching them up and slamming the drawer shut again, you stumble your way out of the kitchen.
Jesseâs already pushing the cabinet away, a metal door hiding and tucked away perfectly behind it, when you also happen to glance over to see Ellie was standing over Mandy as you walked back into the living room, the gun now in her hands. âGo, I can look after Ellie, make sure nothing happens.â He groaned, slumping against the wooden cabinet.Â
âAre you sure?â
âYes, go!â
With trembling hands, one by one, you slot the keys into the lock; cursing and muttering under your breath when certain ones donât unlock it. By the 7th key, the lock falls and you suck in a deep breath. Anything could be waiting for you on the other side of that door. Your life is already on the line, whatâs one more to the list? So with a final sigh, and groan, you pull down the handle and pull the door open. The loud screeching of metal rings through your ears and sends a shiver down your spine.
The coldness washes over you quickly as you look down at the steps leaning into the basement once the doors open. You glance over at Ellie, Mandyâs still kicking at her legs, trying to get up and you send your friend a reassuring smile before making your way down into the dark and eerie room.
Thereâs no windows, you notice that quite quickly first, theyâre all boarded up. No one would hear you if this entire plan goes to shit, Mandy somehow locking you up in here. Not a single living soul outside of this house would be able to hear your screams and cries for help. Not even the animals or insects living right beside it.
Tucking the keys in your back pocket, you step off the last step and release yet another sigh. Itâs colder down here than it was opening the door, you think to yourself. To your left thereâs a table with an endless supply of books, weird. Moving towards them with caution, youâre quick to pick up on all the torn up papers, the pens scattered along it. Picking up one of the notes, youâre in no luck when you find thereâs nothing on there, yet another mystery in your endless supply of wonder.Â
To your right thereâs another small room. You look at it for longer than you like, wondering who would need two rooms in one, until the gentle scraping catches your attention again as you went to turn around. It sounded like chalk on a chalk board, thatâs the best way you could describe such a sound, maybe it wasnât exactly lose to what you can imagine, but itâs the best you got.Â
As you got closer, you noticed the smaller padlock on the door, keeping whateverâs hidden, hidden.
Pulling the keys out of your pocket, youâre shaking even more when you look through them to find a key much smaller than the other ones, one thatâs dainty and could hide anywhere if it tried harder enough.Â
The lock drops and you start to notice your hands havenât stopped shaking, but now itâs starting to get uncomfortable, and uncontrollable for you to deal with. Sliding the lock, you press your forehead against the door and take a deep breath. Was this how it ends? Was this going to lead you into yet another deadend? Was Abby really gone and you were going to be stuck down here with some crazy psycho?Â
âLet go of me!â You heard Mandy scream from above you. Ellieâs words being screamed angrily right back at her.
With a final sigh, you pull the handle down and pull the door open.
If Abbyâs not here, and this is just me falling into a trap, let everyone know I tried.
Itâs dark. You canât see anything. Turning your head, you notice a small light switch just beside the door, covered in mould and dirt, probably not the best idea to put your hands all in it, but you do it. You flick the switch and the light loominates the room and thatâs when you notice it. You finally see it.Â
The figure curled up in the corner of the room, holding themselves until whatever nightmare theyâre able to get out of. Taking a singular step into the room, you crouch slowly, ignoring the throbbing pain in your hand as you reach it out and gently touch their shoulder. âMânot gonna hurt you,â You reassured just before they flinch at your touch with a pained whimper head whipping around and tired blue eyes meet yours.
The sight causes your breath to hitch and heart to thump loudly in your chest.
âAbby?â

Jerry, who was smiling and cooking something for dinner as the music on the radio played quietly, almost fell to his knees the second the door opened to reveal you, Ellie, Jesse and Abby.Â
âMy girl?â He whispered, not wanting to be loud to the point it might scare her. âAbby,â He breathed out when blue eyes met him. âOh, baby.âÂ
Guiding her towards the table carefully, you gently helped her sit down, but not before her hand tightens around your arm when you went to walk away. âMâjust gonna run you a bath, youâre cold and you need to be warm, Iâll be right back, okay?â
Abby simply nodded slowly. Almost like she wasnât even there.Â
âHoney, I can make you something else to eat? You donât have to eat this but,â Jerry trailed off, watching the way Abbyâs simply still looking in the spot you once were, yearning for you to come back already. âAt least drink something for me?â He frowned, pulling his hand back quickly at the sight of Abby flinching and pulling her hand away when his goes to touch hers. âI wonât hurt you, baby girl. Iâd never hurt you.â
You come back no later than 15 minutes. To her thatâs still too long.
Abby didnât move an inch or speak once the entire time you left to run her a bath. She was still sitting silently on the chair, not touching the food her Dad had plated for her, and left the glass of water in Its original spot. âAbby?âÂ
Her head turned slightly, the most movement sheâs done since she got home, and looked right at you. Her eyes looked dull, emotionless but stood up slowly when you held your hand out for her. Taking your hand, Abby doesnât look back or spare a glance to anyone in the room as she leaves. Itâs quiet, too quiet but no on can blame her, sheâs been in a room for god knows how long, they understand that this is going to take some time to adjust.
By the time you made it into her bedroom, youâre quick to scoop up the fresh clothes in your free hand, the other still holding onto hers tightly as you guide her into the bathroom. The same bathroom that thereâs a warm bath ready for her.
Placing the clean folded clothes on the toilet, you looked over at Abby, who still has yet to talk, was facing away from you, looking at the water. âThereâs clean clothes here, if you need anything else, donât hesitate to ask, okay?â You smiled. âIâll give you some privacy, Iâll just be in your roomâ Abby?â Her hand reaches out for yours, grabbing you tightly and keeping you there when you turn around to leave. âHey,â
âS..Stay,â Her voice cracked, but kept her grip firm. âS..Stay, please?âÂ
âOkay, of course, mânot going anywhere,â You promised and cautiously stepped closer to her. âLetâs take this off, yeah? Youâre probably not warm enough.â As you went to unzip the hoodie she was wearing, her hand stopped you again. âSorry, habit,â
âItâs n..not the same,â A sob slipped out and she shook her head. âNot the same,â
âWhatâs not the same?â
âIf I take it off, youâre g..going to find it disgusting,â
âI could never think that of you, Absâ
After a few minutes, Abby nodded reluctantly and let you unzip the jacket fully. It only took a few seconds for you to stop in your tracks and understand what she meant once the jacket was off and she was once again facing away from you. âAbby,â You gasped.
You remember the times you would spend laying on her bed, with her snuggled in your chest, and threading your fingers through her hair, braiding it, playing with you. It was all gone in an instant. Gone just like she had once been. This Abby was left fragile, so thin, pale and terrified. âI..Iâm disgusting,âÂ
Walking around her until you were face to face, you held back a frown and gently cupped her face between your hands, your heart shattering into pieces at her flinch. âWonât hurt you,â You whispered, wiped away the tears that fell and kissed her cheek. âYouâre here with me, youâre safe, and Iâll never hurt you,â Slowly, you brushed your finger across her cheek, and smiled when she carefully leaned into your touch. âYouâre beautiful, youâve always been beautiful.âÂ
Abby doesnât believe you, you can tell by the way she shakes her head, cries harder and holds onto your arms tightly. âMâscared, mâso scared.â
âI know, Love, I know, but I wonât let anyone hurt you again, I promise, I promise I wonât.âÂ
By the time Abby managed to get into the bath, with the help from you, she cried at every touch, rubbing her eyes harshly each time you rubbed the shampoo into her hair, mumbled about being sorry that she couldnât stop squirming and with every reassurance from you that it was okay, it made her chest heave and cries louder. You didnât ask her what happened, you know that when she was ready to talk about it, you would be there to listen. Guide and help her when needed.
Rinsing the final suds of shampoo from her hair, or what Mandy left of it, you smiled softly when her eyes fluttered open and found you. âHi,â You pressed your forehead against hers and brushed your thumb over the side of her neck slowly. âYouâre getting warmer.â You murmured. âWeâre almost done.â
âPromise?â
âI promise, Love.â
Abby was clad in some of your old clothes, curled up in your side on her bed 15 minutes later. Her hand gripped the back of your jumper tightly, face buried deeply in your chest as you drew random patterns along her skin beneath your clothes. âMâglad youâre here,â You whispered against her forehead. âI never stopped looking for you, I hope you know that. You can tell me what happened when youâre ready, mânever gonna rush you to talk about it, but know that weâre here for you, and we just want to keep you safe. Weâre ready to talk when youâre ready.â
All Abby could do was nod.
The door squeaked and opened to reveal Ellie, clothes dirty and hair slightly ruffled, as she stepped into the room with a fresh plate of food in one hand, and a drink in the other. âHey, Abs.â She smiled, placing both on the nightstand before sliding onto the bed beside her. âI know you might not be hungry but, I brought you some food, Jerry practically rushed me to bring it to you.âÂ
Abby curled more into you and buried her face in your chest with a smile tugging at her lips. âHow is she?â
âWhat did you do?â You asked, ignoring her question and noticing the red stains on her shirt instead.Â
âI took care of it, she wonât hurt Abby or anyone else again.â Ellies eyes didnât leave Abby as she spoke. âStop, I took care of it, like we promised. We keep each other safe.â She sighed once she noticed your look. âAbby?â
âMhm?â
âCan I cuddle you?âÂ
Turning her head slowly, Abby looks up at Ellie for a couple of seconds before nodding. Lying down on the bed further, the Brunette carefully places her arm over Abbyâs waist and cuddles up to her back, while Abby places her head against your chest again. âMâsorry it took so long,â She mumbled into Abbyâs back. âMâso sorry.â She kissed her head and held her tighter.Â
Leaning your head down, you pressed your lips against Abbyâs forehead, stroked her arm comfortingly and smiled when she held onto you a little tighter. âYou can sleep now, weâll always keep you safe, Baby.âÂ
One secret revealed, another buried and hidden.Â

#abby anderson x reader#abby anderson x you#abby anderson fic#abby anderson angst#abby anderson fanfic#abby tlou#abby anderson#abby the last of us#abby anderson tlou2#abby anderson fluff#abby tlou2#abby x reader#abby x you#ellie williams#ellie williams x reader#ellie williams x you#ellie willams x reader#ellie williams fic#ellie x reader#ellie the last of us#ellie williams angst
557 notes
¡
View notes
Text
ŕ¨ŕ§ sweet girl. b.e
ŕ¨ŕ§ roomate!billie eilish x fem!reader
ŕ¨ŕ§ genre: smut
ŕ¨ŕ§ content: SUB TOP BILLIE EVERYONE CHEER !! umm praise kink, begging, she's so so so desperate and lowkey a loser but we love her for it, oral (r recieving), anyway i love this so much please please please read it, possibly gonna have another part (or many)
ŕ¨ŕ§ note: you're welcome <3 (this fic serves as an apology for the angst fic i posted the other day) happy new year my loves <3
billie was your roommate, and she had been for a little over a year now. you got along well, and if you were asked, you'd probably say you were friends. she was easy to talk to and easy to live with.
she did tend to get jealous whenever you had your hookups, which happened a lot more often than you'd like to admit. you were single, but people always showed momentary interest in you at the parties you went to.
you always assumed her dislike towards the people you hooked up with was just annoyance at the noise or something; you never thought much of it. what you didn't know was that she had the biggest crush on you, and wanted nothing more than to drag you away from the many hookups and keep you all to herself.
everyone who knew billie knew she was obsessed with you. she wasnât subtle about it, you were just infuriatingly oblivious. her eyes always landed on you, whether you were in class together, having a movie night, or simply in passing. she didnât think sheâd ever had a crush soâŚall-consuming before. and with how oblivious you were, it was honestly infuriating.
but she didn't do anything impulsiveâsomehow. she wanted everything that happened between the two of you to be perfect.
a shift in the trajectory of your relationship with her seemed to be approaching, however. you'd been at a partyâsomething that didn't surprise her. you were⌠making the most of your college years, to say the least.
when you got home, she took one look at the outfit you woreâtaking in the way the fabric hung from your body and the way your makeup looked so immaculate despite having been at a party for hours. her mind ran wild as she looked you up and down.
she felt like a lovesick fool, and for a moment, she understood why her friends called her a loser.
she was so caught up in taking in your gorgeous appearance when she saw you walk past towards your room, that it took her a moment to comprehend who was following you.
a girl. some girl from the party. maybe a sorority girl, maybe someone from one of your classes, maybe someone you'd only just met. either way, she hated it. she hated that you were so blind that you couldn't see what was right in front of youâher.
you and the girl were such an odd pairing together, billie thought. you were way out of her league. sure, the girl was pretty, but there was pretty and then there was you pretty. in billieâs mind, no one was prettier than you.
your new hookup's prettiness aside, she clearly didn't care about you. she was there to fuck and then leave, and billie hated that. you could so easily get any girl you wanted, and you could get them to treat you right. but for a reason billie couldn't quite understand, you preferred these meaningless hookups.
billie's eyes trailed behind you as you led the girl into your room. you knew you were going to get a pretty average hookup out of her, but a hookup nonetheless.
just as you closed your door and the girl sat down on your bed, billie reopened the door and walked inside. what came out of her mouth was a blatant lie, but the girl didn't know that.
"hey, sorry girl. we actually have guests coming over, you might have to leave." her voice was dripping with fake politeness as she sent the girl a deceivingly sweet smile.
the girl left pretty quickly, sending you a slightly dirty look at the fact that the hookup she'd hoped for wouldn't be happening.
you heard her slam the door on the way out, and rolled your eyes. that attitude merely proved that you hadn't really lost anything.
you weren't super upset, because you knew the hookup wouldn't be all that good anyway, but you were still horny, so you were slightly frustrated at billie for interrupting.
you turned to billie and raised an eyebrow. both of you know that the excuse she spilled was absolutely a lie, guests were a rarity for the two of you.
"well, that was a lie. what was that for?â.
billie simply shrugged, âdidn't like her vibe.â
you scoffed at that, âthat's for me to decide. it's my hookup.â
billie rolled her eyes belligerently, âsure, but the hookup wouldn't have even been all that. plenty of other pretty girls who could touch you better.â
when she spoke, you raised an eyebrow. âoh? such as?â
nervousness flashed behind her eyes for a moment, before she spoke with an air of finality. âme.â
you blink slowly in surprise at her blunt response, and once her answer sinks in, i feel heat rise to my cheeks. every little thing is adding up, the lingering looks and the soft touches and theâoh. it made sense suddenly. billie had a crush on you, you realised. you spoke again slowly, watching her carefully. "...you...think you could fuck me better...?â
she swallowed, a slight blush on her face as she nodded. âi know i could.â
a small smirk makes it's way into your lips, âprove it, then.â
billieâs eyes lit up, as if she were a child on christmas who had just been gifted her dream present. she stepped slightly closer to you, âthought you'd never ask.â
there was a long moment where the two of you just stared at each other, and then you leaned in and pressed your lips to hers. the moment you let your tongue enter her mouth, you felt her practically melt in your arms.
her breath caught in her throat as you kissed her, her hands moving to grip your shoulders tightly. as you'd suspected, the dominant act melted away the moment you made your move. she whimpered softly against your lips, parting them willingly as your tongue explored her mouth "fuckâŚâ
when the two of you stepped back and tripped onto your bed, she broke the kiss reluctantly, her breath coming in soft pants. she looked at you, her eyes hazy with desire, her hair already slightly messy, and her lips parted. âholy shit,â she muttered, although more to herself than you.
with a shaky breath, she looked at you, trying to cling to the last bit of composure she had left but failing miserable. her desperation was crystal clear, she wantedâno, needed to make you feel good. she let her hands fumble with the hem of your top, her actions affected by her intense desire, coming across as rushed and messy. âiâve imagined this so many timesâŚâ
your lips twisted into a smirk, letting your hand drift to her cheek. âyeah, baby? whatâve you imagined?â
a soft whine left her lips, and you couldâve sworn the sound altered your brain chemistry. her words came out in a shy whisper â...your hands in my hair while iâŚâ
your lips twitched up into a sly smile at her shyness, and you watched as she trailed off. you knew what she was going to say, of course, you just wanted to hear her say it. âhm? while you what, sweet girl? use your words, donât be shyâŚâ
her cheeks heated up at your words, and she looked down for a moment. you could tell that her heart was practically racing out of her chest. she seemed to contemplate for a while, wondering whether to tell you or to just melt into the floorboards and never be seen again.
when she eventually spoke, the words came out in a rush. âwhile i eat you out. iâve imagined it so many times, touched myself thinking about itâŚâ
you found yourself smiling againâoh, she was adorable. such a confident, cocky personality, reduced to a desperate blushing mess just because ofâŚyou.
âgood girl. see, that wasnât so hard now, was it?â you watched as her eyes practically lit up at the praise, and you made a mental note to praise her moreâafter all, she was such a sweet girl, how could you not? you looked at her for a moment before continuing, âsoâŚyou want to eat me out?â
at those words, her head snapped up and she nodded eagerly with wide, pleading eyes. she was so focused on the prospect of tasting you that she was totally unaware of the way she was inching closer, her hands already moving to unbutton your jeans. âpleaseâŚlet me?â
you hummed softly, taking in her utterly desperate form, before speaking in a soft, teasing voice. âhow much do you want itâŚ?â
yet another whine slipped from her lips, the sound so sweet you felt as if you could listen to it for hours. âplease, need it so bad. need to taste you, please, please, please. wanted this for so long, pleaseâŚâ
and when she begged so sweetly, how could you ever say no? âgo ahead, baby.â
her eyes lit up, and she wasted no time in pushing your jeans down, hooking her fingers in the waistband of your underwear and looking up at you with a silent question in her eyes. you nodded, and she eagerly slipped your underwear down your thighs. her eyes widen at the sight,
âfuck, oh my god. youâre beautiful.â the words came out in a soft, reverent murmur as she used her hands to gently push your thighs further apart.
she leaned in close, pressing a few soft opened mouthed kisses to your inner thighs as she looked up at you. she let her tongue find your folds, and you heard her instantly moan at the taste.
she sucked your clit into her mouth, looking up at you with an absolutely adoring look in her eyes. the total devotion in her eyes made you feel somethingâŚunfamiliar. and god, she was right, it was so much better than your hookups.
her arms wrapped around your thighs, pulling you impossibly closer to her as she continued to eat you out like it was her last meal. she shifted so that one of your legs was hooked over her shoulder to give her better access. she was doing so well, how wet you were and your moans were proof of that. your fingers tangled in her hair, tugging softly and eliciting another string of moans from her.
while she was licking and sucking at your clit, her sweet moans sent vibrations against your cunt.
you moaned softly. you already figured out that she loves praise, and you intended to make her feel good as well, considering she was doing so well for you. "good girlâŚâ
billie looked up at you, your arousal dripping from her mouth, her eyes glazed with desire. she moaned against your pussy, the vibrations causing your legs to shake and your hands to tug her hair slightly harder. she started to pleasure you with renewed enthusiasm, determined to make you lose control.
it didn't take much longer for her to make you fall apart on her mouth, and she eagerly lapped everything up. she was like a starved woman and she was going to make sure she got every last drop. after a minute, she finally dragged herself away from your pussy, looking up at you with your juices dripping from her mouth.
she looked up at you, her eyes practically sparkling. âdo you feel good? did i do good for you?â
those words in that pleading and adoring tone almost made you cum all over again. you smiled down at her, your hand moving to cup her cheek softly.
âyeah, my sweet girl. you did so good for me.â
ŕ¨ŕ§ taglist: @47lake @st0nerlesb0 @n0vabug @darkside-0f-the-sun @asterisk-eyes
#ŕ¨ŕ§ lyd writes#billie eilish x reader#billie eilish#billie eilish smut#billie eilish x you#sub billie
520 notes
¡
View notes
Note
Love at first sight with Luffy
Love at First Sight (Luffy x Reader)
A/N : I don't know if this was exactly what you wanted but I hope you'll like it anyway ! Sorry if there's a few mistakes, English is not my first language and I was kinda tired writing this but it was really great to write ! Let me know if you'd like a part 2 !
As you were busy taking orders in the little restaurant you worked in, you heard the door open and turned your head when you heard a bunch of people talking loudly. There were five people now standing at the entrance of the restaurant and you thought that they made quite an interesting group.
As you looked at them, your gaze was immediatly drawn to a young man, a boy that stood among them, wearing a strawhat that covered brown curls. He had a huge grin on his face and was scanning the place, probably looking for a free table.
You stared at him for a few minutes, completly forgetting that you actually had work to do and that part of your job included welcoming new customers.
You hadn't met many people in your life, since you never had the opportunity to leave the small island where you lived, but this young man was probably the cutest you had ever layed eyes upon. There was just something about him that made you impossible to look away.
The brown haired finally turned his head in your direction and you were met by beautiful brown eyes, sparkling with joy and something else you couldn't quite put a name on. The boy had lost his smile and was now looking at you with such wide eyes that you started to feel weird. Your hand tightened on your notebook as your felt your cheeks starting to flush.
A green haired man nudged the straw hat boy who immediately broke eye contact. Your looked away and took a deep breath as if you breath had been taken away.
You opened your notebook, deciding that it was time to go back to work and went to the counter to pass the new orders to your colleagues. You still felt a little weird because of what had just happened but you decided to ignore it and to look around for more orders to take.
You noticed that the only new customers in the restaurant were the group with the strawhat boy.
Your heart started to race when you saw him sitting at the table a few meters away from you, talking cheerfully to his mates. Were you actually going to approach him ? Yes, because it was your job. Why were you so nervous about this anyway ?
You took a deep breath as you made your way to the table and once again your eyes met with the boy, making you instantly blush.
"Hello, what-what can I get for you ?" you asked, looking at him and trying not to show that you were actually very flustered.
The more you looked at him and the more familiar he felt to you. It was a weird feeling but it was actually very nice.
The boy had opened wide eyes and was staring at you without saying anything.
"I didn't know he could stop talking." the green haired man said sarcastically.
"Luffy ? The waitress is talking to you." said a girl with orange hair.
Luffy. So that was his name. You didn't know why but hearing his name felt like music to your ears and you couldn't help but smile a little.
Your cheeks flushed even more as you kept looking at the boy in front of you, who seemed to be totally lost in his thoughts.
He was really beautiful.
Luffy blinked and got back to reality, but he still looked at you like no one had ever looked at you before. His gaze felt warm and gentle, but also very intense.
"Were going to take a bit of everything." he said with that same smile he had earlier, but this time it was clearly addressed to you.
A warmth started spreading through your whole body and you couldn't help but smile back at him, also a little surprised by his request.
His smile felt warm in your heart and somewhat familiar. He really did have a beautiful smile.
Your eyes simply couldn't look away as your thoughts started to race in your head. You had never felt anything like this before.
What was happening to you ?
"Someone's hungry." you replied after a few seconds, both amused and surprised to see that he had ordered the whole menu.
The boy smiled.
"I'm the future king of the pirates so I need to eat enough food !" he said with that same smile plastered on his face.
Future king of the pirates ? That was really ambitious but you thought it was actually endearing. He had dreams and goals and you thought that it added to his charm. And just by looking at him, you just had the feeling that this boy was capable of doing anything.
"I'll get you plenty of food, don't worry mister future king of the pirates." you said smiling.
His eyes widened at the nickname and you could swear that you saw his cheeks turned a little pink.
Wasn't he adorable ?
You decided to look away and took the orders of his friends, before walking away.
You stopped and leaned against the counter of the bar, trying to regain your composure. You heart was beating like crazy and you just couldn't stop your racing thoughts. Your mind was still thinking about Luffy, that beautiful stranger you had just met and exchanged a few words with.
You felt like you were going crazy but most of all, you felt like you were falling in love.
#luffy x reader#monkey d luffy x reader#opla x reader#one piece live action#one piece x reader#opla#iĂąaki godoy#opla luffy#opla luffy x reader#one piece netflix#one piece#fluff#opla fluff#luffy fluff
4K notes
¡
View notes
Note
Adam x third spouse part 3 Iâm begging pookie â¤ď¸
like a time skip to when Charlie appeared and proposed the idea
Benifit of the doubt Pt.4
Adam x 3rd Spouse! Reader
Warnings: General Adam TWâs, a little bit sad for a moment but itâs ok. Gn! Reader! honestly thatâs about it I think?? Wow this is the first time itâs been this short in this series.
Part 1. Part 2. Part 3.
Request Box: Open
Word Count: 4617~
A/n: So⌠itâs been almost 2 months⌠whoops. In all seriousness though Iâm sorry itâs been so long. Iâve just not been in the mood to write and a lot of stuff has been happening (which is finally over) and Iâm glad I could finally post this. I was also, if Iâm honest, nervous to post this, cause Iâm not sure if everyoneâs ready for the direction of the story. But I have made it clear that I wanted to do a time skip to the show at somepoint and decided to do it now! If you enjoy this, please let me know cause Iâm really nervous about (Not my words of affirmation love language coming out-) ALSO to the requester, I know you said part 3, but I used it for part 4. I got your request as I was making part 3 soooo my bad. Hope you donât mind tho <3 this will be the last part before the angsty finale (and maybe an epilogue)
Reblogs are always appreciated!
Anyways this was NOT beta read unfortunately, I tried to get as many errors out during the writing process so hopefully itâs fine. Also, thereâs probably some words I might have wanted to italicize or make bold that arenât, but Iâm too tired to care honestly.
Tags: @tired-of-life-86 @nervoussystemss @qopia @lovelyemily @hcneyiced @v3r41ynn @ghostdoodlen @nxptvne-13 @ximenavc-che @edgyfluff @ericityyy @diffidentphantom @faimmm @slasher-whore69 @1-randomized @ozzersauce @fanlovedlt @alientee (if I forgot someone or you want to be added just tell me !!)
Days turned to weeks, to months, to years. Until eventually an eon had passed. An entirety filled to the brim with an indescribable happiness and love, threatening to spill over at any given moment. You loved Adam and Adam loved you.
To say it was all happiness would be a lie, there were some moments of sadness and pain, but all relationships were like that, even ones that lasted for eternity. You both always bounced back, apologize and moved on with a stronger bond than before. And you loved every second of it.
A lot has changed in these last few eons. Adam formed a band and is now the most popular guitarist in all of heaven. You both made new friends, some got into heaven while others were made there. Emily was one of these people to you, she looked up to you for being older than her. Youâve existed for almost all of human existence so, of course sheâd look up to you.
Adam had also made new friends, his band members, some officials in heaven, but someone heâs grown close to recently was Lute. You're really happy about his friendship with Lute. She seems like a strong and loyal friend, someone that can keep him grounded while still encouraging him to be more himself. Overall, you really liked her.
How they became friends though is something⌠less tasteful for you. All the way back when Heaven and Hell had their first meeting on what to do with the surplus of sinners in hell causing an uprising. Neither side came to an agreement in the end, you do feel partially to blame for that, but you still stand by what you did.
You never returned to any of the follow up meetings
But Adam did, surprisingly to you. In the end, you were called to talk with Sera and Adam. You were told of the agreement between Heaven and Hell, about the yearly âcleanseâ that Adam and his âExorcistsâ would have to commit. At first you were shocked, sure, you didnât have the best experience with sinners and especially with the rulers of hell, but was death really necessary? You didnât know what to say, and Adam clearly saw this.
âBabe, you alright?â He puts his hand on your shoulder rubbing his thumb in circles. You place your hand on his.
âYeah itâs just a lot to take in. Are we sure it has to be done⌠that way?â
Sera looked down in pain âtheyâre⌠uprising and are becoming to much of a threat to heaven.â
You sighed as Adam took you in his arms. Adam was fully aware that you donât share the same sentiment towards sinners as he does. His hatred towards the unholy souls down in hell was brought about by events that you simply cannot understand. Which he is thankful for, he never would want you to experience what he did.
âIf there isnât anything else we can do then⌠I guess we have no choice. But I donât want to⌠kill anyone, even if they are sinners.â
Adam holds you closer âYou wonât have to,â you smile at him, the now familiar flickering of his LED mask meeting your gaze before softly frown âyou ok?â
You nod, âyeah, justâŚI wish there was another way.â
-
That was it. Adam would take his exorcists down to hell to kill as many sinners as they could each year. Adam knew you didnât want him to talk about it , he kept it as separate as he could from your life. You did have to attend meetings regarding it, as one of the very few people to know about it, that was your duty.
You were fine with having that part of the job. You weren't sure if you could kill someone, sinner or not. So, for the countless years to follow, you played your part with every new extermination, attending meetings to deal with the repercussions of each cleanse.
Adam would also have to attend the occasional meeting. Which is exactly what today was. Sera had called you both in to talk.
âThank you both for coming. I have to inform you that you will be attending a meeting tomorrow.â
Adam groaned âWhat! Again? This is like the 4th fuckinâ one this week! Ugh fine! Where is it this time? halo city? Cherub towneâ Adamâs voice mocked the locations youâve both been sent to countless times with a high pitched voice. Even you have to admit that the meetings could drag a bit.
Sera's face turned into a slight grimace as she looks away from you both, she sighs and continues âThe meeting will be in⌠hell.â
âWhat!â Both your voices raise in shock
âSera, you know I donât want to go down there again!â
âWhy canât you just send the other fucking dipshits who know about-â Adam crossed his arms defiantly
âStop,â Sera raises her hand toward you both âno one wants to go there, and I know you both especially donât.â She pauses âBut you both are the only available angels who know of the cleanse that aren't busy. Please⌠I understand your disdain but heavenâs business comes first.â
âWho are we even gonna be talking to -Wait a damn minute- Donât fucking tell me we have to talk to him.â
âI'm sorryâŚâ You all sat in silence for a moment before Sera begins to speak again, âBut you both wonât have to worry about physically being there, we have prepared holograms for you, so neither of you would be in any danger.â
âI'll have an Angel escort you to the âmeetingâ room tomorrow, please, get some rest. Iâm sure you both have had a long day.â
With that, you and Adam went home, you were definitely not feeling well about the meeting, but the fact you wouldnât actually be there calms your nerves a bit. You had to be a little honest with yourself, hell wasnât really the issue for you, it was more so the people. Lucifer for one, that made you feel uneasy.
The next morning, you and Adam got ready, you had to motivate him a little. He was clearly not excited for this meeting like you. The entire way there he held you close, even though nothing could have hurt you it made him feel better knowing how close you were.
On the way there, you also got Adam some ribs, his favorite. You thought it would help his nerves a bit. Turns out, Lute was the one Sera assigned to escort you both there. That also made you both a little calmer knowing a mutual friend would be there.
The three of you waited in the âmeetingâ room for a while, about an hour. At first you thought the meeting might had been canceled or moved and you just weren't told. But then, Lute walked up to you both.
âSir! The Seraphim has told me to inform you that thereâs been a change in plans!â
âWhat? The fucks that mean?â Adam said stuffing a rib into his LED mouth
âLucifer wonât be attending the meeting, instead⌠his Daughter will be here in his stead.â Luteâs mask showed a continuous frown and stern expression as she spoke.
âDaughter?â Your voice shook a little. This was news to you, as long as youâve existed you had never heard he had a daughter while in hell. You look over to Adam to see His LED eyes were wide in shock but his mask turned into a smile as he sighed.
âPhew boy, we sure dodged a big ass bullet, huh Sweetcheeks?â He laughed as his arm pulled you closer. The whole thing caused you to join in. Suddenly your nerves felt a lot better than before.
âWhen should she be arriving, Lute?â
âWithin the hour.â
-
Adam scarfed down another plate of ribs as you all wait for the âprincess of hellâ to arrive. The entire time you just had to wonder what kind of person sheâd be. The daughter of Lucifer and Lilith. The more you thought about it, the more bizarre it seemed.
But suddenly your thoughts were interrupted by the sliding doors opening to the meeting room and a girl steps in, asking if anyone is there.
âShe canât see us?â
âYeah, Sera gave me a long ass lector on how this stuff works before we got here. Letâs see hereâŚâ Adam pushes a button causing a click to sound out as he says âSup!â
The girl jumps back and falls to the floor, shocked by Adamâs sudden appearance in the room. She introduces herself as Charlie. Adam offers her to shake his hand, only for it to go through.
âHa! I fuckinâ got you! Did you fucking see that? Good shit.â
You let out a slight laugh, as you sit and watch the meeting happen. Well, you say âmeetingâ but nothing about it seemed very professional. Adam for the last hour (you honestly wasnât sure at this point) had been talking about the most random of things.
You or Lute occasionally shakening your head yes or no while listening to him, while Charlie seemed quite tired already. Not that you could blame her, people who werenât used to Adamâs banter definitely werenât cut out for it. But You love every word that comes out of his mouth.
Eventually Adam decides that itâs time to get into what you all came here for. Pulling out a bunch of papers, Charlie begins explaining her solution to hellâs overpopulation. You were only really half listening at first, at least before she mentioned that her solution could stop the extermination which peaked your interest.
She explains her âHazbin Hotelâ and its purpose to rehabilitate sinners, you wanted to hear more of it but Adam cut her off.
The meeting didnât really go that well, At least for Charlie. But the whole thing left quite the impression on you. The idea of ending the extermination was stuck in your head for so long, and now you had someone who had an alternative.
âAdam, are you sure that it couldnât have worked?â
Adam looks at you in surprise âWhat? Do you think that shitshow could have actually worked?â He laughed as he placed a hand on your back. âDonât even pay it any mind, alright Babe?â
âI know, itâs just⌠you know I don't like the extermination. So another way to lessen the population of hell should at least be looked into.â Your voice was soft enough to barely hear.
Adamâs gaze softened but he didnât say another word, only wrapping his wing around you pulling you closer. You lean towards him, snuggling into his soft robe. No matter how much you wanted to ignore it, you couldnât. You needed to do something, anything.
So that night, after Adam fell asleep, you asked to talk with Sera. Leaving a note for Adam saying you went to buy something just in case he woke up.
âWhat is troubling you?â Seraâs voice was clear and concise.
You looked toward the ground, your nerves feeling tighter than ever, as you struggled with how to put your words together. âYou're aware of all that happened in the meeting with Luciferâs Daughter, right?â
Sera nods her head âof course, all meetings are documented about as they happen.â She tilts her head slightly âWhat about it?â
âWell!â You steel yourself before continuing âI would like permission to observe Charlie Morningstarâs âHazbin Hotelââ
Seraâs eyes widen, breaking her calm demeanor before giving a firm âNoâ
âBut-â
âItâs too dangerous for you to be there, Adam wouldnât want that anywaysâ
âHe would listen if it was an order from you!â Your eyes felt watery but you continued âPlease Sera⌠I know you donât want the extermination to continue. Just let me do this!â
Sera looked away from you, her feelings evident on her face, any mask now down. âJust a little moreâ you thought
âSera, I promise you, Iâll be careful! We donât even have to fully support them yet, just let me observe them. It would be devastating if so many souls parish if we failed to seek all options!â You beg
Sera sighed, shakingly ââŚIâll see what I can do.â
Your eyes gleamed up at the tall woman âSera, thank you, thank you!â You wanted to hug her but out of courtesy, you advised against it.
Sera tells you that she canât guarantee anything but she will try as she sends you home to rest.
-
A few days past after that and you havenât heard anything from Sera. It was a little worrying and felt like a bad sign to you. That was, until you were informed by Sera that your request was accepted!
âBut.â Sera stops you before you can celebrate âYou're only there to keep track of the progress and to make sure nothing is happening under our nosesâ You nod your head in understanding
âAlsoâŚâ she pauses âIf anything involving this hotel happens, you will have to take full responsibility, understood?â
You nod again âyes I understand. Have you⌠told Adam yet?â
She shakes her head
âOk⌠can you⌠not tell him it was my idea, please. I donât think heâd agree if he knew.â
Sera sighs before nodding her head âVery well, Iâll tell him after you leaveâ
âThank you.â
-
You return home, when you got back Adam was already gone, Sera must have already called him to the office. You dreaded when he got back. You didnât want to see him upset, it hurt you to know how worried he was for you.
A few hours later, Adam comes through the door in a panic. He stomps up to you and pulls you into a warm and intense embrace.
âDonât go down there. I need you here with meâ his voice hitches as his wings wrap around you both, curling you both into a warm and feathery ball.
âAdamâŚâ you paused, was this really the best thing to do? No, It had to be. If this goes well, not only will the extermination stop but Adam wouldnât have to go down to hell ever again.
âAdam, you know I canât go against Seraâs orders.â You kiss his cheek âand I wonât be gone forever, Iâm only supposed to be there till the next cleanse. Not to mention, Iâll always come back to see you.â
Adam grumbled a little âI know, I just⌠donât like you being in the same place that bastard is, and in his bratâs stupid hotel! â
You laugh softly âAdamâŚâ grabbing his hand, you put yours in it, showing off the gold ring on your finger âIâll never forget my promise. You know that, right?â
Adam looks at the ring, the gold wrapped around your finger with a perfectly snug fit. Everytime he looked at it was just a reminder of your love for him. That promise was something he could never forget. He slowly raises your hand to his LED mask, kissing the back of it. âOf course not.â
âGood. I promise Iâll be fine, ok?â
He nods. Hand in hand, you slowly lead you both to the bed. The both of you lay next to each other, your bodies linked together like knots. You slwoly remove his helmet from his head, laying it on the nightstand.
Your hands move up his body before landing on his face, cupping his cheeks before pulling him to a kiss before snuggling into his chest.
-
Finally it was Time for you to leave. Sera allowed you to create portals back to heaven in case anything happened and you were in need of assistance. Adam walked you to the front gate.
âOk, do you have everything? You didnât forget that fucking angelic dagger I had Lute get for you right-â
You shush him âAdam, I told you Iâll be fine!â
Heâs sighs âDamn it- I know that but just make sure to text me while your there ok-
You kiss him deeply âAdam. I know, youâve told me a hundred times.â You smile as you cup his face âI love youâ
He sighs âLove you too Sweetcheeksâ
With one final kiss, you give Adam a tight hug before waving goodbye as you went through the flaming portal. As you went through, you take a second to look at your surroundings. In front of you was a tall building. You take a few steps back to see LED lights of a sign flashing the words âHazbin Hotelâ
You let out a sigh of relief. You had been a tad bit worried youâd spawn somewhere random and youâd have to find the building yourself. But it seems heaven at least spared you of that.
The red skies of hell were quite different from the pristine blue ones of heaven. Even though you just got here, you could already hear the sounds of screams and explosions in the distance. How welcoming.
You steel yourself and with three hard knocks to the door, you wait for someone to open it. Muffled Scurrying sounds of footsteps approach the door before it creaks open revealing the young blond woman in the doorframe, Charlie Morningstar.
âHi! Iâm-â
The door is slammed shut, Before opening again
âBe not afraid-â
It shuts againâŚ
Well, this may be a bit harder than you initially anticipated. You go to knock again only for it to open once more. This time, the door doesnât close again, instead the girl mutters a quick âHiâ before going quiet.
âHello! I didnât mean to scare you!â You give a small laugh before continuing âI believe we met a couple days ago?â You bring your hand towards her for a shake, to which she reciprocates.
âDuring the meeting with.. Adam? Right?â She grimaced when she mentioned Adam, which you decided to ignore, you simply smiled and nodded. âbut I donât believe I caught your name?â
You tell her about yourself, about how your there to stay and monitor any progress the hotel may have. You made sure to pronounce âmay.â While you were hoping for this idea to show some kind of positive results, even you werenât sure if itâd would work.
âCharlie? whoâs at the door- WhatHolyShit-â a woman with a red X over her eye suddenly shouts in surprise. You look over at her, She looked very familiarâŚ
âWait, you are-â
âVaggie! Charlieâs sinner girlfriend! And you are?!â The woman known as Vaggie, highlighted the word sinner while performing a âbe quietâ gesture with her hand. Your eyes widen a little at the ex-Angel in front of you but you simply smile a nod âIâm Y/n, I donât believe weâve met, yes?â
Look, lying is the last thing youâd want to do as a citizen of heaven but you figured that it would be fine if it was to protect someone. Vaggie nodded, her face scrunched up in a tense look.
âYou feeling ok Vaggie? Youâre looking a little⌠red?â
âIâm fine! *ahem*, Hun, how about you give them a tour of the hotel.â
Charlie gasped âYes that's perfect, you may as well get acquainted with everyone if youâre going to be here more often!â
Charlie ran off, telling you âthis way! This way!â Over and over. Before you went to follow her, you leaned toward Vaggie and said a quick âRelax, I wonât tell anyone.â
She lets out a sigh before muttering âThank youâ
You both follow Charlie as she shows you the various rooms in the hotel before leading you back to the hotelâs lobby and lounge area.
âHey! Hello everyone!â Charlieâs voice picked up a little âIâd like to introduce you to our uh⌠new staff member?â You nod in agreement with the title. The room in front of you was shrouded in looks of both horror and amazement.
âWhat the hellâs an angel doinâ here?â A lanky spider demon spoke up first
âItâsss an ambush! seek Cover!!â The Snake demon shouted, seemingly grabbing an army helmet from thin air before taking a deep dive behind the couch.
âNo Pentious-â She sighs âtheyâre here to monitor the hotel! Heaven sent them to scout any potential progress the hotel will haveâ
âItâs nice to meet you allâ you look at the people in front of you, to say it was a colorful cast would be an understatement.
âThese two are our current tenants of the hotel! Angel dust and Sir Pentious!â
The snake slithered slowly from behind the couch up to you, while the Spider demon remained rested on the couch
âOh⌠*ahem* Excuse me dear! I am Sir. Pentious! Formally known as âthe Architect of destructionâ!â He laughs, a slight hiss sounding in his voice.
He offers a handshake which you accept. To which you immediately regret. â Slimeyâ you thought, before wiping your, now wet hand on your clothes.
The spider demon, who you now know as Angel Dust, just gives a wave with one of his 4 arms.
âAnd-â Charlie extends the word as she quickly walk to a bar by the entrance âthis is the recreational area, run by our Bartender, Husk!â
The winged bartender seemed entirely uninterested in your presence or even Charlieâs. The most you got was a small glance before he takes a swig of his alcohol and walks off.
âHeâs not the most⌠social guy in hellâ she awkwardly laughs before moving on to the next person. âAnd this is Nifty, our one and only maid at the hotel! Nifty say hi.â
The short woman scurried moved around you, her eye quickly looking at every every nook and cranny of you as she moved. She made numerous attempts to touch and grab various things on you, your clothes, wings, and eventually she tried to climb up you to get to your halo. Thatâs when you finally grabbed her in place âyou're a⌠fast one, huh? Nice to meet you!â
âAnd last but not least! This is Alastor, the hotelâs executive producer and our first -and only- overlord sponsor!â
Immediately, you could tell there was something off about Alastor. The entire aura he gave off was as if he was restraining something completely and utterly ungodly. The static that surrounded him was just one of many whispers you could hear from his soul.
âHello! Itâs quite a pleasure to meet someone of your⌠holy status!â He offers a hand to which you, hesitantly, shake. âAnd what do we owe the pleasure for your service?â
âTheyâre going to be here to keep track of the progress of the hotelâŚâ Charlie paused âyou know Iâm starting to sound like a broken record- here, itâs late, how about we all get some sleep and we can talk about it in the morning!â
âFine by me, I am waaay too sober to be having social interaction this lateâ Angel picks himself up and stretches âIâm gonna hit the hayâ
âHere Iâll show you to your room!â Charlie smiles âWe -obviously- didnât have time to make your own so I hope you donât mind using one of the guest roomsâ she laughs
She and Vaggie walks you to your new room before leaving you be, The room was nothing more than just your average hotel room. Of course it did have its differences, a multitude of⌠eyes seem to be on the wall, staring at you. Well, thatâs not the least alarming.
You place your stuff down and begin unpacking, you mostly just brought the basics. Clothes, hygiene stuff, your phone, and, most importantly, a framed photo of Adam.
You sat the photo on your nightstand, angling it just right so that it would always be visible to you. As you do so, you think about the memory the photo brings, you took it on one of the first dates you went on with Adam. It was a relatively tame date, you and Adam, having a picnic by a lake at night. You brought candles so you both werenât completely in the dark, and you just loved the way he looked, his golden eyes watching the water. The dim candle light illuminating his face with a warm golden shade. Adam hates photos of him with his mask off but⌠You just had to keep that moment in time forever.
*Ding* *Ding* *Ding*
Speak of the- well, you know the rest. The bright light from the phone comes with the notification sound displaying Adam in bold letters. You smile as you read his messages.
Dixkmaster69
Heyy Sweetcheeks, itâs been a bit since you left
You there??
Fucking answer
You let out a small laugh at Adamâs barrage of messages. Heâs not used to you being away from him for more than a day, huh? Not that you could blame him, this is honestly nothing compared to how you feel each year he has to do the extermination.
Sweetcheeks
Hey love
Everythingâs fine, Iâm ok.
Aside from not having you with me :â(
Dixkmaster69
Fucking finally
You know you donât have to do this
If I bitch enough to Sera I can get you back by tomorrow
Sweetcheeks
Please donât, Sera already has enough on her plate.
I promise Iâm going to be fine
Iâll be back before you know it.
Dixkmaster69
I know
This shit just worries me
Gonna miss hearing your sexy ass voice at night too ;)
You blush at the message before sighing. Whenever you or Adam approached a topic that made him uncomfortable, he would always try to change the subject to something that made him feel better. You knew why, Adamâs someone who rarely talked about his feelings, even after all these eons together that was something he hadnât changed. You knew exactly what he needed, even if he didnât explicitly tell you.
Sweetcheeks
I already miss yours too <3
Do you want to help me fall asleep with that heavenly voice of yours on the phone?
Dixkmaster69
Whatever you want Sweetcheeks <3
You smile when, almost immediately, Adam begins calling your phone. You click the lights off before You make your way in your new bed, not even bothering to change out of the clothes youâve been wearing. You grab the cover and pull it over you and tapping the answer button.
âSupâ
You yawn âHey handsome, I missed your voiceâ
You hear his voice hitch before he caused on âOf course you did, no one has a better voice than the dick master. But uh, yours is a close secondâ
Youâre let out a tired giggle, âsuch a charmer, you. Howâs your day been huh?â
âOh! donât even get me started on that- Lute took me to get some ribs to âcalm my nervesâ or some shit and they had me, ME, wait in line for like 15 minutes! The fucking audacity!â
You smile to yourself as Adam tells you about his day, the sound of his voice was like a sweet lullaby to your ears and you couldnât get enough of it. But eventuallyâŚ
âAnd then when I got home, I couldnât find my damn charger and it took me like 40 fuckinâ minutes to realize it was under our bed, do you have any idea of how it keeps getting there?â He waits for you to respond only to be met with silence. âUh bitch, Iâm talking to you.â
More silence⌠well no, actually if Adam focused on listening, he could hear the faint sound of your snoring from the phone. Adam sighs,âLong day, huh?â
Adam lays back in your shared bed, getting comfortable. He sets the phone beside him, plugging it in while keeping it on speaker. He yawns, âGoodnight Sweetheart, canât wait to see you againâ
Slowly, the soft sounds of both yours and Adamâs snores filled each others rooms, a distant, but intimate connection. Even in slumber, you couldnât stop thinking of your handsome and caring soulmate.
#Hazbin hotel#hazbin#Hazbin hotel x reader#Hazbin x reader#hazbin hotel x gn reader#hazbin hotel x male reader#hazbin hotel x female reader#hazbin x gn reader#hazbin x male reader#hazbin x female reader#Adam x reader#adam x gn reader#adam x male reader#Adam x female reader#Hazbin hotel Adam#hazbin adam#Hazbin hotel Adam x reader#Hazbin Adam x reader#Charlie Morningstar x reader#lucifer morningstar x reader#x reader#x male reader#character x male reader#fanfic#character x reader#x female reader
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
the archerâs arrow part 2 (w.a.)
are you hiding something?



part one | next part
a/n: teehee i am so sorry for the wait but i hope yâall enjoy this one <3
pairing: wednesday addams x female reader
warnings: mentions of blood & death
âś âś âś
thwip!
it was your arrow, definitely your arrow.
âgo! wednesday! go!â
and your voice, definitely your voice.
wednesday gasped awake, sitting up instantaneously. she gripped her chest, bunching the fabric of her shirt up into a fist. her head turned to look at her alarm clock.
she was awake ahead of schedule but she was grateful she woke up when she did. she immediately got dressed, the stomping of her boots lining the walls of ophelia hall.
she reached your room, knocking thrice before stepping back.
you were already dressed, today was an early practice day.
âwednesday, youâre early.â you tilted your head, stepping aside to let her in anyways.
âi value punctuality.â she lied. she was getting better at coming up with them in her efforts to try and hide her true intentions from you.
a bit of her looked disheveled, like she had rushed to get there. you noticed her braid a little out of place and her socks mismatchedâ both black but definitely not from the same pair.
âright. well, let me finish this and iâll be ready to go.â you took to your chair at your desk, settling back down.
wednesday noticed that there were a couple of envelopes littered across your desk. you were in the process of writing letters.
âyouâre writing.â she pointed out.
âyes, wednesday. thats something i can do too.â you joked back, she remained stoic.
âwhat are the letters for?â she inquired.
âmainly family but also for some of my friends at the academy.â
âi understand your family lives remote but surely your friends have phones?â she furrowed her brows.
âthey do, but we think letters hold more sentiment.â you clarified, scribbling more words onto the piece of parchment paper you had aquired. âand itâs always nice to receive things in the mail.â you shrugged.
âi suppose you might be right.â she agreed. you were surprised to hear her validation.
her eyes followed the ink that your pen left behind. it caught her attention particularly when you drew a heart next to someoneâs name on the envelope.
you sealed the letter and then proceeded to stand, grabbing your gear from your closet. you opened the door for wednesday, allowing her to exit first.
you two walked side-by-side down to the practice range.
âdid you have many friends at the academy?â she asked as you exited ophelia hall.
âmany? not many. but a good handful. they were all very kind. i would love to know them forever.â you smiled, reminiscing at the memories you shared with them.
âany more than friends?â she asked, not looking at you. you looked at her with your lip curled. at the back of your mind, you questioned her curiosity about your romantic life.
âwhoâs asking?â you retaliated, a smirk plastered on your face. you glanced at her only to be met with a glare. you knew you would certainly meet your end if you left the question unanswered.
âyes, wednesday. i had a girlfriend.â you sighed, rubbing your eyes. it was a bit of a sore spot, this topic.
but wednesday cared not for sore spots.
âwhat happened?â she pryed further. why was she pushing those buttons so much?
the memories of her rejection flooded through your brain. she had no right to ask these things. you remember how the look on your face was probably the single most heartbreaking thing most of your fellow students have ever seen.
âwhy are you asking about this, wednesday?â you practically hissed at her.
âiâm not going to take advantage of your practice times and not get to know you.â she spat back.
âyou⌠hm.â you paused. âi never thought iâd be answering questions from wednesday addams. youâve changed too.â
âso answer them if my question intrigue you so much.â she continued walking at your pace.
âfine. we split up because i wanted to come back and we couldnât do the long distance.â you answered openly. âbut weâre still friends. she and i were very close, she helped me through a lot.â
you continued to stride towards the forest as wednesday simply watched you. you had someone, but were fine giving it all up to come back. the feeling opened a pit in her stomach, if only you had known what she was hiding.
â
she had taken a liking to your routines in the wilderness.
âi purposefully try to miss.â
you had told her that was the closest thing you could get to immersing yourself into your environment. murder of fauna in the nevermore woods was frowned upon, so you had to learn control.
âisnât that counter productive?â
she asked back, but you proved her wrong. your control was incredible. nicking a squirrel by the hair of its tail, she watched the focus on your face as you tried to ensure itâs life.
âitâs harder to hunt down animals and make sure they live rather than die.â
today, she sat with a notebook. she said she just wanted to focus on writing up ideas for her novel while you practiced.
it was like she was your body double, just a shadow that lingered around while you did your thing. somehow, it worked. you felt more productive and so did sheâŚ
if she was working on her novel.
her pen glazed across the yellowed paper on her notebook. the ink morphed into the image of your bow. on paper, your body was facing the trees, arm reaching for an arrow from your quiver. wednesday captured your physique, how your body flexed with every move you made.
thwip!
wednesday did not flinch.
but she nearly did.
an arrow lodged into the tree trunk, directly above her head.
âi can literally feel your stare, wednesday. youâre making me nervous.â you teased. her eyes grew dark at you.
âtry that again and you wonât have fingers to shoot an arrow with.â
you couldnât help but smile at her empty threat. you knew wednesday more than either of you thought. you knew that she wouldnât take your fingers, they would stay with you.
you drew your bow again, pointing an arrow straight at her jokingly.
âtry me, addams!â
the statement made wednesdayâs head shoot backwards, her eyes clouding over.
âtry me addams!â you yelled at her. you were younger. your cheeks were fuller, you hadnât quite grown into your face yet.
but there you were, back then, the object of wednesday addamsâ affection. but she could never admit that then.
you were on your back, pinned against the ground with wednesday on top of you. she remembers this fondly, she was trying to steal back her hairties that you had stolen as a joke.
you were laughing. it was the most joyous sheâd ever seen you. she didnât know how she was getting that reaction from you.
she was reaching as you held the ties above your head, swinging your arm around to make sure she didnât get it. she was growing frustrated.
she groaned and drove two of her fists down into your chest, robbing your body of air. you coughed as a response and caved in, handing her the hairties.
âokay addams!â you choked out, sitting up to be closer to the girl. you laughed softly, coming face to face with her. âi just wanted to play a prank on you.â
âpranks are a waste of your time. you have better things to do.â she said, standing up. âyouâre going to be late for practice.â she looked down at you. you remained seated.
âtheyâre not a waste of my time if it means i get to spend time with you.â you said, honestly. sure, you were mildly flirting but you were geniune. wednesday didnât know how to process the admitted desire for companionship. she returned the sentiment, but it wouldnât come out of her.
âiâll come to your practice then.â wednesday said, putting the hairties in her bag. âiâll sit there and wait for you.â she held her hand out for you to take so she could help you up.
you grinned up at her from where you were.
that grin, she would have killed for it.
âdeal!â you jumped up excitedly, a proud smile on your face. you took her hand to stabilise yourself.
and it was then she got her first vision of you.
you were older now. definitely older.
you were still in the forest, holding wednesdayâs hand just like how you were in the real world.
your bow was in your left hand, like you had just come from battle. blood was dripping down from your ears.
you had blood staining your shirt. and it looked bad. something most people wouldnât be able to recover from.
and it flickered between the image of your eyes crickling from how huge your smile was and the sight of you donning crimson in front of wednesday.
âwednesday!â you cried out to her, catching her in your arms.
and then she was back to reality.
âwednesday!â
a vision of a future in a vision of the past? that was new for her. her powers might have been trying to tell her somethingâ something more urgent.
she remembers leaving you alone at practice that day, taking back her deal to you. she had to sit alone and process.
three days later, she broke your heart.
âyou still get those often?â you asked, sitting her down against the tree trunk.
âof course i do.â she snapped, her conscience pounding from the double vision she just had.
âsorry, stupid question.â you said, regretfully. you sat in front of her, still holding her back to steady her. âdo you want to talk about it?â
she hated how you cared.
âno.â she shook her head. âit was just⌠nothing. nothing important.â
âyou and i both know your visions have saved countless lives, wednesday.â the way you said her name had her head reeling. âis there something we should be worrying about?â
âno⌠no.â she waved you off, pushing you away. you sat there nonetheless.
âokay well⌠are you feeling okay?â you worriedly questioned her.
âi would feel better if you stopped asking questions.â
you recoiled, knowing it was best not to provoke her like this. her heart twisted at your concern, they made her feel almost guilty for pushing you so far away.
she had broken you down slowly, she knew that now. you poured your heart into your affectionate manner, it was something that scared her.
you sat in silence, taking in your surroundings and letting her recover from the vision. you were around when she first started getting them, you knew how badly they affected her.
she almost wanted to apologise, tell you that she was sorry for snapping. but she couldnât let you get close again.
âwe should go soon, lunch is in 30 minutes.â you spoke up first, breaking the peace. she simply nodded at you, helping herself up. you followed suit, yanking the arrow you had previously stabbed into the tree out and putting it back into your quiver.
âś âś âś
you sat across from wednesday. she recalled a time you would fight for the seat beside her, but instead, you filled the space next to yoko.
âyouâre already thinking about the raveân?â you asked enid, munching away at your food in between sentences.
âof course i am!â enid jumped up. âitâs our last year here! we need to think about these things!â she turned to you and grabbed your hands.
âand itâll be your first & last raveân back! we have to make it good!â she squeezed your hands. you rolled your eyes but couldnât hold back a smile.
âokay well, youâll help me shop then.â you held your pinky up, which the blonde gladly took in her own.
âgood! and you, wednesday?â enid turned to the shorter girl, tilting her head.
âmy raveân experiences havenât exactly been pleasant, enid.â wednesday brushed her off. âmaybe this is the year i skip out.â
âyou shouldnât. i would like you there if itâs my first one back and last one iâll ever have.â you said, forgetting that such desires were usually turned down by wednesday.
but that was somehow enough to convince her.
âfine.â she grumbled, a contrast to the smile that was now stuck to your face.
ânever thought that would be so easy. you must be the sentimental type, addams.â yoko commented. the mental image in wednesdayâs head was her brutally bashing the vampire for saying that.
âdo you know the theme?â you asked enid. the werewolf was finally asked to head the planning of the raveân, she was perfect for the job.
âyup! since itâs halloweenâ weâre doing guts & gore!â
you swear you saw wednesday nearly crack a smile, this was right up her alley.
âand glitter!â enid added in, you were unsure if she was joking.
the joy on wednesdayâs face faded slowly, you softly laughed at the change of expression.
âdonât worry, addams. iâm sure youâll look fine bedazzled.â you joked, snickering. yoko laughed beside you.
she glowered at you, your smile persisted. did she no longer have an affect on you in these situations?
you really had grown.
âi would rather choke and die before covering myself in sparkles.â she took an angry bite of her food.
âdonât worry, wends, iâll forgive you this once.â enid giggled. âgore is still your element, iâm sure it will be reminiscent of your first raveân.â
âi heard about that.â you chimed in. âpigâs blood, right? maybe you can work with real blood this time, nobody seems to know the difference. and youâd probably enjoy that better.â you had said that almost too casually, it bothered her.
she was like an old book you hadnât picked up yet still knew the insides and outs of.
âyes. maybe i will.â she answered briefly. you returned to your meal, finishing up and picking your bookbag up.
âgotta go, i have some botany homework to catch up on.â you said, turning to wednesday quickly. âdid you want to join me for archery club later?â you asked.
she paused for a second, debating her answer.
âno, i canât. i have homework i need to do in my room.â christ! why did she say that? she meant to say yes!
perhaps it was her defense mechanism, she wanted to keep you at armâs length after what happened in the forest today. she needed some time to process.
âno worries. iâll see you guys later!â you jogged off and waved as you left.
âis it weird hanging around her again?â yoko asked, she realised she hadnât talked to wednesday about your return much.
âi suppose.â wednesday nodded. she had grown closer to yoko overtime, finding herself being honest towards her. âsheâs changed a lot.â
âi mean, yeah. her entire environment changed in a whim. that makes you grow up.â yoko agreed. âyou two seem to be getting along just fine.â
âindeed. but we can never go back to how we used to be.â wednesday tried to put up a front. âiâm sure she wouldnât want that either.â
âgiven how you tore her heart in half last time you saw her? i wouldnât put it past her.â yoko sighed, âbut you canât hold it against her forever.â
âi can and i will.â wednesday scoffed. yoko squinted at her.
âare you hiding something?â the vampire asked. yoko had an excellent talent for reading people, it infuriated the addams girl.
âno.â wednesday responded firmly, standing up abruptly and gathering her things. âi have to go. iâll talk to you both later.â
enid and yoko shot each other worried looks.
wednesday stomped off to her room, a scowl evident on her face.
she hated this. all of it.
she hated that her visions were getting stronger, they were so loud that they were making her entire body hurt.
she hated that she would once again become responsible for saving someone, she was always thrust into the world of the weird. was it such a crime that she wanted some normalcy?
she hated you. she hated that she was forced to reject you in order to prevent your impending doom.
she hated you. she hated you for returning and making her feel things again.
she hated you. she hated that she was terrified of your death.
she hated you. she hated you. she hated you.
but she had to save you.
âś âś âś
authorâs journal
okay iâm soooo sorry this took ages! and that this is relatively short! but i was in the middle of quitting my job and planning my christmas trip to see my family!
iâll let yâall in on the readerâs powers more in the upcoming chapters but she is definitely a psychic!
i also am sooo excited for halloween!!! iâm going as wednesday this year and i also bought from the doc martens x wednesday collaboration so iâm so so keen on getting it in.
i hope you guys enjoyed this chapter & hopefully chapter 3 will be out before you all know it!
kisses xx
#the archerâs arrow#wednesday addams#wednesday#wednesday addams x reader#wednesday addams x f!reader#wednesday addams x female reader#wednesday addams x you#wednesday addams fic#wednesday addams one shot#wednesday addams fluff#wednesday addams angst#jenna ortega#jenna ortega x reader#jenna ortega x female reader#jenna ortega x f!reader#jenna ortega angst
502 notes
¡
View notes
Text
fever dream | sebastian vettel
part 2 part 3
warnings: toxic soon to be ex husband who cheats on reader (if i miss anything, let me know!!)
update: i decided to make this into a series, thanks for reading!! you can read it here!
AN: THIS SAYS THAT SEB AND THE READER WERE TEAM MATES FOR 2014 AND 2015 THATS A MISTAKE SORRY I ONLY MEANT TO PUT 2014 đ


INSTAGRAM (private account)

liked by lewishamilton, yoursistersaccount and 24 others
yourusername a short trip back home đ¤
lewishamilton enjoy it!
yourusername thanks lew! miss you and roscoe đ¤
lewishamilton roscoe and i miss you more
yoursistersaccount itâs great to have you home
yourusername đ¤ love you
view all 13 comments
âluke, alison! your aunt y/n is here!â your sister yelled as she opened the door to her home. in a matter of seconds, loud footsteps were heard running down the stairs. âno running!â
but still the kids didnât listen, they were excited to see their aunt. âhey, my babies! oh my god, you two have grown so much. stop growing!â you hugged your niece and nephew.
âiâm almost as tall as mom!â alison, the younger sister, said.
âliar, thatâs just what dad says to make you feel better. iâm going to grow more than you and then iâll be taller than you.â luke teased.
âyou both can be tall, but never as tall as me.â you joked as you placed a kiss on their cheeks.
âare you going to stay with us forever?â alison asked innocently. âdad said that you donât want to stay with your husband anymore and youâre going to stay with us.â
âalison!â
the truth was hard for little kids to understand. yes, you were going to stay with your sister for a few days and yes, you didnât want to stay with your husband anymore, but it was a bit more complicated than that. your husband had cheated, lied, manipulated you and you had enough. he was the reason you couldnât come back to the sport you loved and worked your whole life for.
âwell i am going to be staying here, but not forever. i just needed a break from him, itâs normal.â you tried to explain to the girl.
âbut my mom and dad donât take breaks?â
âalison, just go to your room, you too luke, please. dinner is going to be ready in an hour.â your sister said, feeling embarrassed that alison would ask those questions.
âwhat did i do?â the older boy whines as he and his sister walked up to their rooms.
âiâm sorry. i spoke to jack the night you called. we were cleaning up the table after dinner, i assume she heard.â your sister explained.
âitâs okay, theyâll understand when theyâre older. not everyone is cut out to be loved . . .â
or a mother.
only a few people had known about your issues with infertility, your sister and lewis being two of them. after you retired from f1, you were sure that in a couple months, you were going to be busy with doctorâs appointments, buying baby clothes and building a crib, but none of that happened. after a year of trying, you were convinced you werenât meant to be a mom.
you thought about returning to the track, after all many drivers returned after saying they were retiring, why couldnât you? but that plan was spoiled by the man you thought loved you.
âyou canât go back, you donât belong there. itâs a manâs sport. youâre probably going to crash in the first lap anyways.â
you didnât know why you stayed with him, but you did. maybe it was the promises he kept telling you about or the hopefulness that one day you would become parents and maybe he would change. but again, none of that happened.
âum, i have to call someone. iâll be right back. excuse me.â you told your sister as you walked to the patio door and exited the house. without hesitating, you clicked on a familiar contact. you held your phone against your ear and waited for the person on the other end to pick up. it felt like forever, but eventually they picked up the call.
âhello?â
#formula 1#f1 x reader#formula 1 imagine#f1 imagine#f1 x you#sebastian vettel instagram au#sebastian vettel fluff#sebastian vettel x reader#sebastian vettel imagine#sv5#sebastian vettel#sebastian vettel one shot#f1 smau#sebastian vettel smau
2K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Reader catches Brahms touching himself. They bang!!
Hiii!! It has been a while since i wrote a full fanfic! Iâve been busy with college. I havenât come across a freaky brahms fic in a while so i figured this would be the lucky post that made it outta the drafts. Anyways yeah, not my best work but im ovulating. What can you expect? This is just gratuitous smut. Sorry. I hope you like it anyway!
As always, reader is written as chubby but all can enjoy! ao3 link: https://archiveofourown.org/works/64812139
MDNI! NSFW. 18+
You discovered Brahms all on your own. With your clothes and food from the fridge going missing and creepy bumps in the night and the undeniable, chilling feeling of being watched constantly you were able to put two and two together. You werenât sure what to do at first but you surmised that his parents werenât coming back and you were starting to like him and the financial stability so you stayed.
After months of living with him you like to think you made progress with him. He gained a bit of weight because you were cooking him meals fit for an adult man. He became softer, belly hairy with a layer of muscle underneath. He was better about his hygiene, too. He wore clean clothes and showered. His hair had grown a bit longer and it wasnât greasy and tangled anymore. You convinced him to sleep in an actual bed in an actual bedroom rather than a raw mattress in the fucking walls. He willingly helped with household chores. You showed him some of your hobbies so that he had something to do while you were away or just busy.
Somehow, it worked. It was all so domestic.
One night, you were half asleep as you heard the bedroom door open. You felt a flash of panic, remembering the time before, when you werenât aware of his existence. âBrahms?â you called, voice thick with sleep. âCanât sleep,â he said in that small voice. You slowly sat up and patted the bed, inviting him in.
Within the next few minutes he lay beside you, soft snores muffled by his mask. He had never crossed that boundary before. There had been times when he fell asleep in the library while he watched you read, sure. But this was more intimate. You turned your back to Brahms, trying not to stare at his sleeping form.
It wasnât that you didnât find Brahms attractive. You did, especially after âfixingâ him. There were just so many risks. What if he didnât like women your size? What if he didnât like women at all? What if he saw you as a maternal figure, despite you being close in age? If you decided to tell him how you felt, and it wasnât reciprocated, what would happen? He would clam up. Likely kick you out, or go back into the walls.
You ignored your feelings for him as you did with every other crush and infatuation in your life, and tried to go back to sleep.
You woke up to a sliver of sunlight on your face. You were going to get up and adjust the curtains, planning to go back to sleep for another hour or two, but you found it hard to move. You looked down and saw his large hands wrapped around your soft tummy. You felt his slow, deep breaths against your neck and turned your head to see his peaceful face, sans mask, which you assumed he placed on the nightstand.
You didnât mind this. You rolled over to face him so the sun wouldnât be in your face, and went back to sleep.
You were stirred awake again, this time from the bed shaking, just barely. His voice was deep and shaky. You could tell he was trying his best to be quiet but he couldnât help tiny moans and whines from escaping. His back was turned to you and you saw his hips slowly moving back and forth.
âBrahms?â His hips stilled. He became as quiet as a mouse. âBrahms I know what you were doing.â You felt a powerful throb in between your thick thighs, wondering if you caused him to feel that way.
âPlease donât be mad, I couldnât help it!â he whined guiltily. âItâs fine Brahms, itâs natural.â You hoped it was because of you, but realistically it was probably just morning wood. You imagined his prudish parents made him ashamed of his body as he grew up. You wanted to reassure him, let him know he was safe with you.
After a few beats of silence he said, âYou were just so pretty while you were sleeping.â Your pussy throbbed again. âLook at me Brahms.â He didnât move. âYou can put the mask back on if you need to, but I want you to look at me.â He put his porcelain mask back on and then sat up to face you, head hung in shame. You considered your next words carefully. âI uh, I thought you looked pretty while you slept too. I wanted to do what you were just doing.â He lifted his head and stared at you, his breath quickening. You wished you knew what he was thinking.
âThink youâre pretty all the time,â he said quietly.
Your eyes moved from his masked face to his crotch, where he was still rock hard. âYou can touch me, Brahms.â His breath hitched. Tentatively, he placed his hand on your thigh, testing the waters. His fingers stroked across your flesh gently. You held your breath.
Before you knew what was happening you were on your back with him hovering above you, chest rising and falling heavily. His hand hovered above your large breast. âHm?â he wordlessly asked for permission, too afraid to speak. âYeah. Yes. Please,â you said.
His warm palm groped you over the fabric of your sleep shirt. He groaned as he watched the fat spill from around his hands. He could feel your nipple harden against him. âWant⌠I wantâŚâ he cut himself off with a shuddering breath. Brahms pulled his mask off and placed it back on the nightstand. âKiss me, Brahms.â He obeyed, sighing and licking into your mouth.
You knew from the beginning that Brahms was a needy man. In those first few weeks, he would throw tantrums whenever you had to leave. He was clingy. This was something completely different, though. He touched and sniffed and licked every part of you he could reach as if you were going to disappear into thin air.
Brahms ground his sizable cock between your thighs as he buried his face in your neck. You were sure you both could cum like this, but you were needy too.
You said his name gently, trying to get his attention. He either didnât hear you or didnât care as he continued to rub himself over your clothed pussy. âBrahms!â you yanked his head back by his hair so you could look him in the eyes. He moaned, the desperation obvious on his face.
âI need more, okay?â He nodded and moved back, eyes fixated on the boxers you slept in. Tentatively, he rubbed you with his hand over the underwear, effectively holding the core of you. He watched a small wet spot form before he pulled the boxers off of you and dropped them to the floor.
âIâm most sensitive here, Brahms,â you grabbed his hand and led it to your swollen clit.
He swiped the bundle of nerves with his thumb, your hips jerking in response. He moved his hand a bit lower to collect some of your wetness. You expected him to rub it onto your clit but he instead brought the hand to his mouth, tasting you.
His breathing deepened as you watched a drop of precum bead at the head of his painfully hard cock through his pants. He grabbed both of your thighs and pushed them further apart, bringing his face closer to your cunt. âYou taste so good,â he muttered.
Tentatively, he licked you from hole to clit, savoring the taste again.
He had no finesse, no technique, he didnât even think to use his hands at all other than to hold your thighs open for him as he devoured you. What he lacked in experience he made up for in enthusiasm. He moaned and whimpered as he ate you out, and ground his cock down into the bed, desperate for some sort of friction. Without warning he moved his hands from your thighs to up under your fat ass, lifting your hips in the air so he could get even closer to your cunt.
He switched from licking into you to sucking on your clit, relishing in your shaky moans. He liked feeling like he was doing a good job.
All of a sudden it was too much, and you felt that familiar coil in your stomach. Your hands shot to his soft hair again and you said, breathless, âBrahms im gonna cum pleasedontstop.â He licked and sucked in every way he knew how, trying his best to get you there. Within seconds you were cumming on his face, pulling his hair just because you needed something to grab. He licked you into over-sensitivity, and didnât stop until you pushed him away.
He did very well, one of these days youâd have his head between your legs for hours, showing him the best ways to please you.
He sat up on his knees, deciding for himself that he needed his pants off that very moment. His cock bounced as he roughly yanked them down and, Oh. You didnât know what you were expecting. You caught a few glimpses of it under his pants just now but they didnât do it justice. You werenât even sure if it would all fit, especially since you were out practice. But by god, you would try.
You sat up too, but since he was still standing on his knees, your face met his chest. You coaxed hm to take his shirt off, admiring his stocky physique.
âMay I touch you, Brahms?â He grabbed your hand and led it directly to the tip of his cock. You wanted to play with his tits, get him off slowly, run your nails up and down his torso, but you felt bad for how long he stayed denied. next time, you thought. Instead, you grabbed his hardness, feeling it throb in your hand. His hips made small, abortive thrusts as you slowly stroked him. You looked up at his face and saw his lips were pressed in a thin line. You could tell he was holding back from fully fucking your fist.
You decided that you both waited long enough, and laid on your back, opening your legs again for him. You pulled his cock towards you, edging him closer to your wet heat. âPlease?â he begged, pushing his dick against you. You nodded, unwilling to wait any longer.
He held his cock and slowly guided it inside you. You felt the sting almost immediately. You placed a hand on his stomach, stilling him. He whined. my bratty boy, you thought. âBrahms, youâre very big. If you donât go inside slowly, it will hurt.â He nodded obediently as he pushed inside, careful to not hurt you. The slow stretch was a bit more pleasurable than it was painful, and all you could think about was how you had never felt this full before.
After a few moments, Brahms bottomed out inside you. He swallowed, waiting on your okay to move. You stared up at his face, brows furrowed and lips pouting. You wondered how long you could keep him here inside you, not allowed to move. A very long time, you imagined.
âYou can move now.â He sighed loudly with relief. You probably wouldâve laughed if the air hadnât been punched out of you as soon as he moved. It was gentle and slow, but impossibly deep. You clenched around him involuntarily, he yelped, startled at the sensation. âOh, Iâm sorry sweet boy, I didnât mean to do that, I couldnât help it.â You felt him pulse inside you as his breaths came it short, loud puffs. He thrusted his hips again, more powerful this time. It was your turn to yelp then, pleasantly surprised by his roughness.
At first, you thought that perhaps you needed some gentle treatment. It had been a while, after all, and he was the largest youâd ever taken. But something feral and eager in the back of your mind wormed its way to the forefront of your thoughts. You wanted it hard.
âFaster Brahms!â He made a choked off sound, excited at the prospect of getting to drill into you like he always wanted. Brahms followed your command immediately, shifting his position slightly so that he could move easier. The air was getting punched out of you with each thrust. The pudge of his stomach dragged deliciously across your sensitive skin.
âGood boy!â It just sort of slipped out. You hadnât meant to say it. But the effects were almost immediate. âHunh?â he moaned, confused and unbelievably turned on. His hips stilled as he stared at you, panting, eyes wild. He grabbed your thighs and pushed them up against your stomach, folding you in half. He leaned over you, impossibly close, both of your shaky breaths mingling with each other. He rubbed himself against your core for a bit. The sound of your slick mixing with his precum was obscene and maddening. Part of you just wanted him to do as he pleased, use your body as his very own fleshlight. But you were waiting for him to beg. At least this time.
âPlease can I? Iâll be good,â he asked, voice shaky. What did that even mean in this situation? you wondered. Perhaps what he meant to say was âIâll make you feel good?â That wasnât what he said though. He said heâd be good. For you. How could you refuse something like that? You nodded wordlessly, lifting your hips incrementally. He pushed his cock inside you slowly, slowly, wanting to savor every wet and velvety inch of your pussy.
When he finally bottomed out he somehow felt even bigger than he did before with this new angle. It was as if he was in your stomach. In your ribs. In your throat. You felt dizzy. His grip on your chubby thighs tightened as he began thrusting again, starting immediately with a punishing pace. He didnât pull out very far in this position, unwilling to fully leave your warmth for even a second. It was like he was trying to fuck a baby in you, you thought deliriously. Shit. Whereâd that thought come from? It got you dangerously close to cumming and the way he was constantly rubbing against your clit because of your proximity wasnât fucking helping. You werenât going to last very long, though you wouldnât mind being put into a mating press like this for hours at a time.
You needed to cum again. You needed him to cum with you. In you.
You started deliberately clenching around his length, relishing in the way it made his hips stutter and his voice crack. âMore, Brahms. Be good for me.â He made a startled sound but didnât stop his hips for even a moment. He redoubled his efforts, pile driving into you like he hated you. The combined stimulus of his fucking and the sounds of his desperate moans and the vulgar plap plap plap of your hips slamming together and the god damned breeding thing had you teetering over the edge.
You realized then why Brahms hadnât cum yet. You hadnât given him permission. You tightly gripped the hair on the back of his head, pulling it so that his ear was right next to your mouth. You licked his ear and felt him shudder. âYou fuck me so well, Brahms. Wanna cum now?â He nodded eagerly with his hair still gripped in your palm. The sting of it made him shudder. âCan I? Can I? Can I?â he chanted, making sure to fuck you in the way they you needed. âCum. Cum in me like the good boy I know you are.â That did it for him. Two more sloppy thrusts and his hips stilled, cock deep inside you. His voice keened as he let out an impossibly large load inside you. You followed close behind, feeling your pussy ripple around him.
You both struggled to catch your breath. Your mind felt foggy and all you could focus on was his comfortable weight on top of you. And the fact that he hadnât softened, still hard and pulsing inside you.
Yes, you had become addicted to him just that quickly, and he hadnât softened always been addicted to you.
#fanfic#reader insert#smut#chubby reader#plus size reader#brahms x reader#brahms heelshire#brahms the boy#mdni#slasher x reader#fat reader
194 notes
¡
View notes
Text
your first time together - jaemin (idol AU)


IMAGINE: Jaemin booked a room in a beautiful hotel just so you could enjoy a quiet dinner togetherâbut tonight, your mind is somewhere else.
TW: sex, oral (woman receiving), MDNI
��ęŚęˇâĄęˇęŚď¸ś ︜ęŚęˇâĄęˇęŚď¸ś ︜ęŚęˇâĄęˇęŚď¸ś ︜ęŚęˇâĄęˇęŚď¸ś
⢠You take a deep breath, trying to summon the energy that seems to have suddenly drained from your body. Youâve just pulled a grueling 12-hour shift at the hospital where you're doing your residency, and youâre beyond exhausted. Youâre used to long hoursâhell, you love your jobâbut today, even getting ready for a date with the most attractive man you've ever met felt like a monumental task. Usually, picking the perfect outfit, doing your makeup, and preparing for a night out are your favorite rituals. And dinner in a luxury hotel? That should sound amazing. But your body isn't cooperating, even now that youâre standing right in front of the place, where Jaemin is waiting for you.
⢠You take the elevator up to the room he texted you about earlier and exhale again, mentally bracing yourself to look as radiant and charming as ever. That man... he really gets to you, even if youâve only been on a few dates and are technically still strangers. But the moment Jaemin opens the door, greeting you with a warm smile, your shoulders instantly relax just at the sight of him.
âHi, pretty.â
âHi Jaemin. You look amazing tonightâlike always.â
He laughs as he takes your coatâpartly to hide the butterflies erupting in his stomach.
âYouâre stunning, as always. I hope itâs not too weird I set up dinner here instead of in the restaurant downstairsââ
âOh, you donât need to explain. I saw how crowded the lobby was. This is better. Itâs peaceful.â
He smiles again and guides you to a beautifully set table. You glance aroundâthis isnât just a room, itâs a full suite, complete with a living area, kitchen, and probably two or three bedrooms.
⢠Dinner is going greatâheâs charming, funny, and you could honestly listen to him talk all night. But your legs ache so badly that itâs hard to focus.
âYou okay?â he asks gently.
You glance up and give him a quick smile. âOf course! Sorry, what were you saying?â
He seems unconvinced but continues anyway. Still, the fatigue creeps back in, stronger now.
âIâm so sorry, hang onââ
You suddenly push back your chair, startling him slightly, and kick off your heels in the least graceful way possible. A soft moan of relief escapes as your feet finally get some freedom. When you sit back down, Jaemin is staring at you, wide-eyed, shocked by your sudden shift in demeanor. You take another bite of your perfectly cooked steak and glance up at him through your lashes.
âYou were talking about the shooting. What happened next?â
He blinks, still stunned. Then tilts his head.
âHow many hours did you work today?â
You blink slowly. âI told you.â
âI feel like you lied to me tho.â
⢠You meet his questioning gaze, but after a second you sigh and sink back into your chair, defeated. âTwelve hours.â
Jaemin's eyes widen. âWHAT?â
He shoots up and rounds the table to stand behind you. When his hands land on your bare shoulders, you flinchâbut only for a second. His gentle touch immediately begins to melt the tension away.
âW-What are you doing?â
âYou need rest. If Iâd known you were this worn out, I never wouldâve asked you out tonight.â
You know what he means, but you canât resist teasing him, even as your brain short-circuits from the sheer bliss of his fingers on your skin.
âSo youâre saying Iâm not date material when Iâm tired?â
He laughsâa deep, rich sound that wraps around you like a hug. Even from behind, you can feel the brilliance of his smile. Then, he leans in close, his breath warm against your ear, and your heart flips.
âYou really are something else⌠I should be more careful with what I say, shouldnât I?â
You mean to answer, but the way his lips brush against your earlobe robs you of all words.
⢠His kisses trail slowly down your neck until they reach your shoulder, and a soft sigh escapes before you can stop it.
âThere it is,â he murmurs. âIâve been waiting to hear that sound since the night we met.â
âYou really do need to watch what you say, pretty boy.â
You thread your fingers through his hair and pull him into a kiss. He sighs into your mouth and runs his hand slowly down your arm, savoring the contact.
âYouâre exquisite.â
âYou havenât even had a taste yet.â
âOh my God⌠may I?â
You see the tremble in him, the way anticipation dances in his eyesâso intense it sends a tingle down your spine and a rush of heat down ditectly to your core.
âHelp yourself, sweetheart.â
A sound escapes himâhalf sigh, half groanâand before you can process it, heâs already on his knees between your thighs, moving like heâs been waiting his whole life for this moment.
⢠His hands slide up your legs, reverent and eager, as if trying not to lose control entirely. His fingers hook into the waistband of your underwear, sliding them down with deliberate care, leaving only the hem of your short dress as the final barrier. He lifts the fabric and leans in like a man starved, his lips and tongue exploring you with aching hunger, kissing, licking, lapping and sucking. A breathless moan escapes your lips, and your fingers dive into his perfectly styled hair, tugging in a desperate attempt to ground yourself.
âGodââ
âRelax⌠let me hear that beautiful voice of yours.â
Jaemin quickly discovers he loves every sound you make. Youâre not quietâand he absolutely adores that. And you? You quickly discover that he purrs. Every time you touch him, in any way, deep, vibrating sounds rise from his chestâlow and primalâmaking your whole body clench with anticipation.
⢠Minutes blur into moments, and soon youâre both tangled in the nearest bed, skin to skin, breath to breath. His arousal pulses in your hand, and his mouth is wrapped around one of your breasts, worshipping every inch of you. Between gasps and sighs, he pauses just long enough to look into your eyes.
âDo you remember that night, when we met?â he whispers.
You nod, searching his gaze.
âI told you I fell for you. I wasnât lying. I am in love with you, y/n. Youâve got me wrapped around your finger, and Iâm not even trying to fight it. I love every second of this.â
Your heart flips at his wordsâeven more so given the way heâs gently massaging your breast while you hold his erection in your fucking hand. Youâre convinced this man is someone worth holding onto.
âThen make love to me,â you whisper.
⢠The look you share is honey-sweet, and the kiss that follows feels like the start of forever, you never experienced something that powerful. When your bodies finally join, itâs as if time slips away. Every breath is shared, every motion deeply felt. Jaeminâs skin is warm and everywhereâhis hands mapping you with the kind of attention that borders on worship. His movements are slow and intentional, but rhythmic and sharp. Each motion, each gesture, each stroke, each thrust is precise, as if heâs learning the language of your body one syllable at a time. Youâve had passionate moments before, but never like this. This⌠this feels like something rare. Something sacred. Youâve been with others men (and you can tell he had women in his hands before too), but nothing has ever felt quite like thisâespecially when this is your first time together, for fuck's sake. Somehow, your bodies fit like they were always meant to find each other. And the look in his eyesâtender, awestruck, entirely yoursâmakes it clear that he feels the same. It feels right.
⢠The moment builds, layer by layer, until his thumb finds the right place on your clit and his rhythm stays steady. Your body gives in firstâtightening, clenching, unraveling with a gaspâand seconds later, Jaemin follows, a soft curse escaping as he presses deeper, drawing out every last wave of shared bliss. He collapses beside you, chest heaving, and immediately pulls you into his arms, resting your head against his broad and strong chest. You can hear his heart racingat an alarming paceâand it makes you smile.
âWhat if I called you every time I finish a twelve-hour shift?â you ask quietly.
âHow often is that?â
âEvery other day.â
âThatâs not nearly enough,â he murmurs. âI need to see you every single day.â
âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤
other jaemin's chapters:
bf!jaemin scenario
jaemin - when you first met
jaemin - your first time together Ë˰â˘*â⡠you're here!
bf!jaemin scenario II
OT7 chapters:
your contact names in each other's phone
his favourite part of your body
when he hurts you during sex by accident
â nct dream idol AU index â
¡Ëâ ďšim4rmy's masterlist
Taglist: @carelessshootanonymous
âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤âĄâ¤
#nct#nct dream#nct dream imagines#nct fanfic#nct imagines#nct jaemin#jaemin imagines#na jaemin#jaemin#nct dream jaemin#jaemin fanfic#jaemin x reader#jaemin x you#jaemin x y/n
338 notes
¡
View notes
Text
OT13 reaction to the idea of a threesome with another member
Request: hey!! can you possibly do !husband!svt reacting to having a threesome with another member?? kinda like if they even would consider it, or who they would choose out of all the others. thank you so much already!! + yes hubby!svt x wifey!reader x another member is what i meant!! sorry for being unclear about that!!đ¤
A/N: Some of these choices might make it seem like Iâm shipping, lol, but anywayâI hope this is what you wanted! I scheduled this without saving it to my drafts for a recheck, so donât mind any mistakes I mightâve made. Tumblr doesnât save changes, but I have way too many pending requests, and itâs getting overwhelming. I couldnât complete the other requests because of this Tumblr issue, but today, I had an epiphany: I can just post directly insteadâat least until Tumblr gets back to me. So please ignore any typos, formatting errors, etc., etc.
This is my personal opinion and perspective. It may not accurately reflect their real-life personalities or behaviors.
Would Definitely Consider It (Under the Right Circumstances):
Jun â Heâs the wildcard. He has a flirtatious and experimental streak, so he wouldnât mind trying it if you initiated the idea. Minghao will be his choice (bahahah).
Hoshi â Heâs adventurous, playful and very open-minded. Heâd probably be the one to bring it up first just to see your reaction. He loves excitement and if itâs something youâre curious about, heâd be down. Woozi would be his first choice. Heâd love to see his usually composed bestie in a wilder setting lol.
Mingyu â Heâs open-minded and likes pushing boundaries in relationships. Heâd probably joke about it first but if you were genuinely interested, heâd consider it. I think his choice would be Wonwoo or Jeonghan. They already have that chem, and they are someone Mingyu trusts completely.
Minghao â Heâs open to new experiences but only if itâs something you really wanted. Heâs emotionally mature enough to separate pleasure from deeper love. Jun will definitely be his choice (yes they're each other's choice). They have a natural bond and heâd feel most comfortable with him in such an intimate situation.
Would Maybe Consider It (But Itâs Complicated):
Dokyeom â Heâd turn beet red at the suggestion but wouldnât be completely opposed. But the real problem is heâd get too emotionally attached and overthink things. In my opinion, I think his choice would be Mingyu. Itâd feel like a fun, spontaneous thingy with someone he already vibes with.
Vernon â Heâd be very nonchalant about it and respond with, âI meanâŚif you want to.â But deep down, he might not actually care enough to make it happen. Dino would definitely be his choice for a threesome. Heâd pick someone whoâs also laid-back, so nothing feels awkward.
Dino â Heâd need a lot of convincing. He might go for it if it was positioned as a âfun experiment,â but afterward, heâd probably get shy or maybe overthink. His choice will probably be Hoshi. Thereâs already a strong bond, and it would feel more like a game than anything super serious.
Absolutely Not (Too Loyal, Too Possessive, or Just Not Into It):
Seungcheol â This man is territorial. You are his, end of discussion. Suggesting it might even make him a little jealous and possessive.
Jeonghan â He loves to tease about things like this but would never actually go through with it. Deep down, heâs high-key possessive and wouldnât want to share you.
Joshua â Heâs too traditional and reserved. He doesnât want to take even a 0.001% risk of anything that could potentially affect the relationship.
Wonwoo â Not necessarily out of jealousy, but he sees sex as something really personal and wouldnât want you or him to share that level of intimacy with anyone other than each other.
Woozi â Heâd be so so uncomfortable with the idea. Heâs private and values intimacy in a one-on-one setting.
Seungkwan â Absolutely not. He would take the idea as a personal attack, wondering why he alone isnât enough for you.
#svt x reader#mansaenetwork#seventeen x reader#seventeen reaction#svt reactions#scoups seventeen#joshua seventeen#jeonghan seventeen#jun seventeen#hoshi seventeen#wonwoo seventeen#woozi seventeen#dokyeom seventeen#mingyu seventeen#minghao seventeen#seungkwan seventeen#vernon seventeen#dino seventeen#seventeen scenarios#seventeen#svt#â
â mylovesstuffs twenty twenty five#â
â mylovesstuffs
216 notes
¡
View notes
Note
hey, I could ask the royal boys (Leona, Kalim and Malleus) with the male reader who is already the king of his country, like the boys thought he was a prince like them, but then on any given day he lets out a complaint how difficult it is to govern the kingdom and study for exams at the same time, sometimes he just wanted to be the prince and not the king.
characters: leona, kalim and malleus x king!male reader
tags: platonic, canon compliant, fluff, imagines + scenario format
warnings: a little bit of negativity towards reader in leona's part, a bit of swearing in kalim's
author's notes: loving all the male reader requests rn. i think i strayed a bit from the prompt but i hope you like it anyway <3
Leona Kingscholar
Though being a prince himself, heâs not as âdiplomaticâ with the other princes at that school - except for you probably. No donât ask him what happened, heâs ready to accept it as it is
At least because of your (assumed) status, he finds it easier to communicate with you; at least youâre not one of the top five most powerful mages in the world or the most optimistic person in Twisted Wonderland
Hangouts with him still consist more of silent chilling though; both of you just need to get away from it all for a while
He doesnât question the days that youâre gone - sometimes people just end up needing you to do this and that. He tries not to dwell on it too much, lest his inferiority complex gets the best of him
Until one day, you come back after one day of absence, which is normal enough until-
â*sigh* I swear, being king is less appealing as my retainers make it sound, especially since I also have to go to school all the while.â
Iâm sorry, being what now?
He knew you were royalty, that much he got from everyone whispering about you back when you enrolled and since you made little mention of your background, he just assumed you were a prince like him
You let out a tired chuckle then and comment on how you forgot that you never told him youâre an actual king of a nation
He has mixed feelings over this - he thought he finally met someone a little bit like him, yet youâre just another one of them and you never bothered telling him who you are?
But donât worry, he gets over his feelings of betrayal after a while; itâs not like the reveal changed who you are as a person. Youâre still the same guy who heâs been hanging out with and he knows his brain is trying to defend itself
You apologize for not telling him sooner and despite your complaints, you try not to sound ungrateful, especially considering his issues
At some point, even Leona himself starts to forget about that fact
It doesnât matter if you carry a whole nation on your shoulders because - and he will never say this out loud - he knows youâre capable and if you start to crumble, heâll be there for you.
Kalim Al-Asim
Though heâs not one to really care about someoneâs social status, heâs happy to have more royal friends
Doesnât stop him from spoiling you. Havenât you heard? Any friends of Kalim are also friends of his many, many fortunes
He invites you over to Scarabia for parties every so often and either you are surrounded by people or everyone leaves you alone out of intimidation
But hey, if the latter happens, Kalim is more than happy to help you make some friends (unless youâre uncomfortable with it of course but heâll still try to help)
One time, at one of his many parties, you two were simply laughing over something and it reminded you of something-
âThat makes me think of the time this creature took a shit on my throne back at home - it took a few days for the stench to fade!â
Oh, of course, your throne! Everyone totally has a literal throne back home! Until Kalim realizes that is, in fact, untrue
As if he wasnât already excited at the prospect of a new friend, he gets more excited at the fact that you have your own throne and is, he concludes, a monarch
You brush him off, light pink decorating your cheeks, saying that itâs not really that special - and you mean it
You tell him of the experience and you couldnât help slip in a few complaints; it isnât easy to juggle both school and royal responsibilities at the same time
He only listens in and tries his best to understand; he is no king, and though he is a housewarden and a prince, your struggles differ from his by a long mile
From that day on, he makes sure to check in on you and if youâre feeling less than, heâll drop everything and do anything to relieve you of your stress
When he drops by your nation and your palace, he brings in a whole parade. Itâs so Kalim that you can only laugh
You knew that story about a creature shitting on your throne was gonna be a good story at parties.
Malleus Draconia
Your presence is an absolute delight to him; it didnât occur to him to ask what kind of royalty you are but it didnât matter either way
He finds himself more comfortable talking about his heritage around you, knowing that you can somewhat relate to being of nobility
If youâre not part of his club, sometimes you tag along on his gargoyle crusades for the hell of it - seeing him so passionate about something brings a smile to your face
On one of your many escapades, he points out a gargoyle and begins to ramble about its features
Hearing it suddenly makes you remember-
âAh gosh, I just remembered I should be back home right now, some of my people will be coming over to construct some gargoyles around my castle.â
He doesnât question it at first but then the phrase âmy peopleâ registered in his mind. Wait, what do you mean your people?
You start to apologize for not telling him and also the fact that you have to leave that very moment
After you came back after the whole ordeal, you sit him down somewhere and tell him about your position
As mentioned, it doesnât matter to him what responsibilities you have, as long as you can be his friend
You breathe out a sigh of relief and invite him to continue where you two left off last time
Nothing changes much between you two, except for the fact that you share more of your kingly experiences
He definitely drops by your place at least once - he could never miss out a chance on seeing some new gargoyles
And as he looks on at those beautiful waterspouts, you canât help but be grateful that they can serve as a source of happiness for someone too.
#writing#twst#twisted wonderland#twst x reader#twisted wonderland x reader#platonic twst x reader#platonic twisted wonderland x reader#twst x m!reader#twisted wonderland x m!reader#twst x male reader#twisted wonderland x male reader#leona kingscholar x reader#leona x reader#leona kingscholar#kalim al-asim x reader#kalim x reader#kalim al-asim#malleus draconia x reader#malleus x reader#malleus draconia
1K notes
¡
View notes
Text
Haunted.
âŠŕż summary: geto had suffered enough, why should he let you go too?
warning(s): suicidal thoughts/idealizations, death, poor coping mechanisms, gn!reader, depression, isolation, description of violence, angst no comfort, curse!reader, cult leader geto things, character study vibes, not proofread (sorry). wc; 15.7k
pairing(s): geto suguru/reader, geto suguru/gojo satoru/reader (briefly), geto suguru/gojo satoru
a/n: hii, been a while since iâve written an x reader fic so hope this abides by everyoneâs standards :) as i finished this, i realized that this probably should've been multiple parts because of how long it is, but it was too far gone at that point. anyway, i hope you enjoy and if you don't i would rather not hear about it!
available to read on ao3. | divider 1
I. 2005
SUGURU WAS SURE YOU HAD A DEATH WISH.
Out of everyone, it seemed as if you had some crazy switch in you that just flipped during a battle. It was as if you got tunnel vision and your every move was erratic, death the only option. It did not matter to you whether you lived or died. Saving others was your main and only goal. That scared him to death.
You were powerful. Powerful enough where you didnât need to go all out on every curse that even hinted at having some type of power over you or others. Yet you always found yourself in Shokoâs room, sporting one cut too many, and a bright grin as if you werenât pushing the limit. You would wave away any and all concern with that smile.
Iâm just fine, you would roll your eyes at their worry. Really, you guys, stop fussing so much.
Suguru had argued with you about it before. Both of you had been sent on a mission to some elementary school, few kids had gone missing. You found the curse, and the kids, and a fight ensued. It was nothing crazy. Not until you practically served yourself on a platter for the curse and told Suguru to run away with the kids. Of course, he didnât leave. What kind of friend would he be if he just let you die? What kind of sorcerer would he be if he just ran away while you were torn limb by limb? Heâd be a failure of a sorcerer and a failure of a friend.
It bothered him. It enraged him how easily you threw your life away for others. A hint of danger and you were willing to get yourself killed over it. The complete disregard for your life in the first year that you all knew each other irked his very soul. Your behavior was worrisome. It confused him.
The buildup to his fight with you was a lot to unpack in itself.
The car ride from the hospital the kids were at was silent. Filled with a tension that unsettled his heart and he was sure unsettled your mind. You made no attempt at small talk or passing a good job, it was just silent. He silently thanked you for it. Because he was sure if you spoke then, he wouldâve blown up. He wouldâve said horrible things. So he silently thanked you for your silence, your silent allowance to let him think. You even fell asleep and Suguru couldnât help but ask himself how you could sleep so soundly after such a close brush with death.
Three days later, he could tell Satoru and Shoko noticed the tension.
He knew they noticed it the moment you two returned. Your clothes soiled, face covered in mud and blood, hands all too shaky. Maybe it was the way you walked away from his side to great them. Or it was probably the way he glared at the wavering smile on your lips as you told them everything went fine. It was most definitely that.
Shoko was weary of it. At lunch, sheâd sit between him and you. Her words were light as she teased and prodded, but never dared to ask the serious questions. She kept the air free of the awkwardness or the anger brewing. Shoko was kind like that. She was optimistic.
Satoru, however, wasnât.
Although he seemed to abide by the silent rule not to ask you questions, he was practically grilling Suguru any given moment. He asked what happened. Why was Suguru so angry? Why were you acting so standoff-ish? Had something finally happened between you? Did Suguru get rejected and was he throwing himself a pity party? There were so many things that he threw out into the open like it was silly. As if Satoru derived some entertainment from the tension.
Do you ever notice theyâre ready to get themselves killed for others? Suguru had thrown out to Satoru a week after the mission.
Satoruâs eyes lost the amusement and his smile dimmed. He pushed his glasses further up his nose. Of course I have. His voice was ridiculously serious and slow, extremely distant. As if recalling something he pushed to the back of his mind often. His attention had cut back to Suguru and shook his head. Man, itâs best to leave this alone. Trust me. Sensei will say something soon enough.
Suguru couldnât help but worry that their first year teacherâs talk wouldnât come soon enough.
Things just didnât make sense to him. He just didnât understand why you would be so willing to throw yourself into death like it was a blanket on a cold night. Sure, theyâre meant to save people, but it didnât mean death. Not everything had to be final. He feared that you just didnât know it.
All of it came to a head when all four of you were placed on a mission three weeks after.
At this point, it was apparent that you both were avoiding each other. Different topics that neither of you wanted to address made headway into your dynamic. Distanced you both from one another like it was a bubble. A shield protecting you both from uncomfortable and frankly angry conversations.
But you did it again.
Sure, this time the curse was too much. Things werenât looking too great for them. But the moment Suguru noticed you were missing from his and Satoruâs side, he felt panicked. He knew what was coming and knew what youâd say.
You caught the curse off guard as you jumped from the top banister, your large hammer at the ready. You shouted something along the lines that they should get out of there. But Suguru nor Satoru dared to run away. He watched, in horror, as you vanished into the curseâs mouth. As he was ready to summon his small arsenal of cursed spirits, the thing was cut from the stomach. Then you got its head.
There was silence as you stood amongst the carnage. Covered in the things purple goopy blood. Then you turned to them with that smile and Suguru lost it.
âWhatâs wrong with you?â He yelled, his voice echoing off the walls and converging on you. You looked shocked, eyebrows raised and faltering away from the pride to the confusion. He took in a shaky breath as he felt the built up anger from the past three weeks finally come up. âDo you have to throw yourself into danger like that?â
You frowned at him, then pathetically gestured at the curse. âItâs dead, isnât it?â
Suguru pressed his hands against his face, letting out a deeply annoyed groan. âThatâs not the point! The point is you threw yourself into its mouth! Like it was nothing!â He pushed himself forward to at least close the distance a little. Despite hearing Satoruâs soft protest, he needed to look you in the eye.
Your irritation was apparent as you furrowed your brow. âIt doesnât matter! Seriously, whatâs your issue lately? Youâve been a complete asshole since that mission we went on. I thought you were just feeling bad for those kids, but youâve acted completely different towards me!â Suguru could only clench his jaw at your obliviousness. Thereâs no way, right? There was absolutely no way you didnât see what you were doing to them. To him. But when you said your next words, that thought was out the window. âOkay, so I threw myself into the middle of things, but so what?â
So what? So what. So fucking what?
Suguru felt something deep within him snap. As if there was a car underwater and the glass that was keeping the passengers safe suddenly cracked. His emotions, his clear mind, were the victims of the drowning. Buried deep under your ignorance.
âSo what?â He snapped, his hands clenched into tight fists at his sides as he regarded you with unsettled rage. âSo what? Are you serious? Like, are you dumb or are you just playing with me because I seriously canât tell right now!â
You flinched at his tone and he could hear the shift of rubble behind him. âSuguru, heyââ Satoru tried to de-escalate the situation but he was ignored.
âExcuse me?â You uttered, glaring up at him.
âWhenever we go on missions, youâre the first one throwing yourself at the thing like it isnât serious. As if thereâs not a high possibility that youâll die! Every single time.â Suguru had a finger against your chest now. He wasnât even sure when he had reached out, but he could feel the curseâs blood on his fingertip. It was cold and thick. Uncomfortable. But you were covered in it like it was nothing. Everything was nothing to you. âSo, Iâm asking you: are you dumb or just acting like you are?â
Your eyes were narrowed as you regarded him. âI know itâs dangerous, but sometimes thatâs the only option.â Was all you had to say in response.
âYou shouldnât be the first one to die every time!â Suguru was desperate for his point to get across. For you to understand that it wasnât the matter that it was dangerousâ it was the fact that you were so willing and ready to have everyone live without you.
âI donât know what you want me to say.â You frowned.
Just understand I care. That if you were to die right in front of my eyes, Iâd lose it. Iâve only known you for ten months, but I canât imagine a world where youâre dead. Youâre one of my best friendsâ the first friend I ever made, please donât make me live longer than you. Were all the selfish things that Suguru wanted to say. That he shouldâve said.
Instead, he asked, âDo you just want to die?â
There was a very long silence that kept them all from moving.
The question was posed and he could see it in your eyes. Could hear it in the words you didnât speak. You looked away from him, shame settled on your face. Suddenly, you looked small compared to your usual large and boisterous self. Have you always been this small? Or was this something he was just realizing now?
It settled in his mind, suddenly, that he was right. His assumptions, rash and brazen, were right.
It made him queasy, lightheaded, as he stared at you.
âY/NâŚâ He uttered with a pale face. He desperately wanted to reach out, to grasp your shoulderâ make some type of contact. But his limbs wouldnât move. He wasnât even sure if he was breathing or blinking. His mind just repeated the one fact he knew over and over.
You wanted to die. You didnât care if you died out there, alone, because it was all the same to you. You were waiting for death as it was waiting for you. Like an old friend. You wanted to die.
Suguru felt the overwhelming urge to cry as it all settled. âYou want to die?â He couldnât help the whisper as he stared at you in horror.
Your cheeks were a deep crimson red, tears pooling in your eyes as you took a step back from him. âIt-Itâs not like that.â
Suguru slowly shook his head. âY-Yoââ You shouldnât feel like that. Is what he wanted to say. But what good would that do? You knew that. You probably prayed you didnât every day.
âI justâ you guys are so important to the school and-and to me! If you guys died, theyâd be scrambling and a lot of people would probably suffer. But if I died, then who would even careâ?â
âI would!â Suguru couldnât help the tears that collected in his eyes. Here he was, almost 16, crying in front of you. But he needed you to know he cared. That life wouldnât be the same without you gracing it. He reached forward, grabbing your hands in a vice like grip. âI would care! If you died I would be miserable and I would miss you like crazy. Donât say no one would care because, if it doesnât matter that I care, then everyone would. Youâre important to everyone. You matter.â
Your eyes were on him now, wide and unsteady as you regarded him with confusion and disbelief. âSuguruââ
âWe would all care. Satoru would be so annoying without your stupid quips. Shoko would be miserable if there wasnât anyone to get her cigarettes when she forgets. And IâŚI would lose it if you were dead. I would. I would lose my mind, Iâd do something crazy like⌠like leave everything behind.â It felt wrong to say. To put such weight on you, but he needed to know the role you played. How important you are. He clenched his jaw in determination, eye contact unwavering as he squeezed your hands. âIâll prove it to you. I swear on it. Iâll spend the rest of our lives proving it to you.â
âBetter than anything I could say.â He heard Satoru utter behind them, then the tell tale yelp that came after Shoko slapped him upside the head.
You didnât let that distract you as you fell forward into his arms. Clutching at his uniform as you let out a small cry. He held you up and listened as you dumped years worth of pain into his chest. Suguru couldnât ever recall seeing you like this before. He never really wanted to see it again. You didnât say anything in response to his rather embarrassing ramble to you. No, not to that.
Instead, all you said in return was, âthank you.â
II. 2006
Suguru was in love with you and Satoru.
He realized it the afternoon in Okinawa, all of you walking through the aquarium as Riko pointed out various fish that she knew too much information about. Of course, he wasnât listening. He was much too focused on you and Satoru. The both of you had snuck away to a gift shopâ proclaiming that you needed mementoes and souvenirs for your friends back home. You adorned an octopus hat while Satoru had various fish stickers pressed to his cheeks. You both more resembled children on a field trip than highly esteemed sorcerers.
Suguru loved it. He loved you both.
It was a sudden and rather scary realization.
It came over him as you placed another sticker on Satoru's face. The both of you releasing absurd laughs that had no business sounding so lovely. He could feel the small smile blossom on his own lips as Satoru argued that he'd have the "gooey stuff" all of his face later, which made you promise to help him clean it off with a rag. Then you placed a delicate kiss against his cheek. It was so nonchalant, something they should all be used to, but it was always so jarring. Satoru stared at you with wide eyes behind his glasses, then he grinned. Wide and devious.
Suguru's heart soared.
He wanted nothing more than to reach out, to grab both of you and kiss you like there was no tomorrow. To promise his heart and his life to you both. It would be easy. It would be mere second nature to him. Suguru may just be realizing how deeply he loved you and Satoru, but he was almost sure that he'd felt this way since month five of your first year.
Surely, it shouldn't be a surprise. You three had been getting bold lately. Shoko was even commenting on it. The late nights in your room, the both of them curled up at your side. The domesticity of one of you returning to your dorm and being greeted by the other two. You all had a routine. A promise to come back through the door and have another fight of arguing over what's for dinner. Or something obscure that he wouldn't put up with with anyone else.
He just wanted to tell you and Satoru that he finally feels normal in the world. With you both by his side. That when he has your skin pressed against his, he feels like he could take on the world. That Satoru makes him feel childish and free like he couldn't be when he was a kid. That his kisses were sweet and soft. He just wanted to tell you that he loved you.
But Suguru saw your eyes stray away from Satoru's and the smile faded away. "We have to give her a choice." You said suddenly.
Both Satoru and Suguru moved their attention to Riko. The girl was standing in front of a expansive tank, watching in amazement as the fish zoomed by. The girl unaware of their watchful eyes as she turned to Kuroi and asked her to enjoy the fish too.
Suguru and Satoru had acknowledged that you were probably the last person who should be on this mission almost immediately. It wasn't that you weren't well fit for it, or that you would be too detached, or not want to get involvedâ it was that you had warmed up to Riko immediately. The girl had become your shadow. She asked about your technique and how "two idiots" like them were able to be in your presence. She amused you and you amused her. Then she asked you what you thought about her merger and you told her you thought it was something you shouldn't get involved in.
But Suguru and Satoru saw it in your eyes. They knew what you thought the moment Yaga had said the word "erase".
You wanted to save her.
"I knew you'd say that." Satoru snorted, leaning back against the tank they stood before. His eyes rolled upwards to look at the dolphin swim pass across from them. "You're always meddling."
You glared at him. "I don't meddle!"
"You do." Satoru said fondly. "What did I say, Suguru? They'd meet the girl and meddle, right?"
You snapped your eyes to Suguru who shyly stuck his hands in his pockets, shrugging. "You did say that." I did not. Suguru used kinder wordsâ like you cared about Riko and you'd probably not want to see her throw away her barely lived life for Tengen-sama.
You pouted, picking at the railing next to Satoru. "Am I that predictable?"
"Only because we know you so well." Satoru teased with a small smile. Then his eyes cut back to Riko who was gradually making her way further down the area. As much as Satoru would deny it, Suguru could tell that he'd come to grow fond of the girl as well. "What do you propose we do, exactly?"
Now Suguru was looking back to you. He could see the shock in your eyes as they snapped up to Satoruâ as if you couldn't believe he was playing into whatever ideas you were tossing around. There was a spark of hope in your eyes and Suguru had to look away to prevent the smile that wanted to spread across his face. Instead, he'd let his heart do that weird skip it usually did whenever you and Satoru were particularly adorable.
"All I want is for her to have a choice," Your voice was compassionate as you started. The look in your eyes distant as you turned your attention towards the small tank in front of you three. The portioned tank that had different beta fishes separated. Together they're deadly. Apart, they find peace. Riko had explained. "The way she's talked about everything... the merger with Tengen-samaâ that's what she was born for. She's proud of it. But given the choice, she wanted to spend her last day with her friends. She wanted to go to school and hang out with them because she knew she'd never see them again. Instead of really wanting to do this, she's just doing it because she feels like she has to. Where's the freedom in that?"
Suguru smiled softly at you. "So we give her a choice." He agreed with a small nod, finding satisfaction with the brightness in your eyes.
"We'll have to fight Tengen, you know that?" Satoru kept his eyes steady on Riko as he questioned the two of you. Both of you blink, obviously not having considered that detail. "They'll put up a fightâ probably other sorcerers too. Freeing Riko might mean we leave Jujutsu High."
Suguru let his mind wander. Would he really mind if the three of you left? Not really. If the three of you have to fight Tengen-sama, then he'd gladly fight them by your side. If you both wanted, he'd destroy the world. Then gladly live his final moments with you both at his side. That was a fact that he knew to be true in his soul.
"I'll gladly do so." You answered without hesitation. Of course you would, you self sacrificial fool. A bitter part of Suguru said. There was no question that you'd put your life on the line for Riko. "If her choice is to live life, then I'll fight Tengen."
"And you'll win?" Satoru asked.
You raised an eyebrow. "We're the strongest, aren't we? Us three?"
Something about your words made Suguru 100% sure that he wouldn't allow you both to walk alone in the world. Together, there wasn't anything you three couldn't take on.
Satoru finally turned from Riko to stare at you with a self assured smirk.
Oh, Suguru thought with a stutter in his heart. He'd already made up his mind before you did.
"Well, well! I thought you were above all that we're the strongest crap!" Satoru teased, throwing his arm around your shoulders as you rolled your eyes. "Don't be so entitled, Satoru. You're making Haibara and Nanami feel less than, Satoru. You sound ignorant, Satoru. Look who's high and mighty now!"
"Oh, stop!" You pushed his arm away, but your smile was fond. You turned back to the beta fish. "Sure, it's a little entitled, but right now, I'm being nice."
"Thank you, thank you, my beloved royalty." Satoru dramatically bowed before you. You uttered something about him being dramatic, which went ignored. The white haired sorcerer reached over and slapped Suguru's arm, peeking at him fondly from behind his glasses. "Suguru, bow for your deity!"
Suguru was about to decline, until you spoke up. "You're ridiculous, you know that? Don't do that." Suddenly, he felt inclined to follow suit.
Both of them were now bowed behind you, uttering their dramatic praises as you blushed, attempting to ignore them as people walked pass and stared. Suguru peeked up at you as you watched the beta fish swim around. In that moment, he prayed that nothing changed.
Things weren't right.
Things weren't right but you were so calm.
Silently, Suguru could only shoot a thankful glance in your direction as the elevator creaked under the strain of four people. He could tell you were worried but your expression was determined to stay pieced together. Satoru was above ground, fighting against that manâ Suguru couldn't think about it. It was too much in the mess of things.
The elevator came to a screeching halt and there was no hesitation on your part to push the doors open. You seemed quicker, your movements a little stilted as you exited the elevator and, instead of looking at the three behind you, you kept your gaze on the various entrances. He could tell you were irritated. He could tell you were worried. Or nervous.
No, you were scared.
His attention turned towards Riko and Kuroi who were exchanging a heartfelt, tearful goodbye. They clutched onto each otherâ Kuroi told her to be brave and Riko promised she would. Then they separated and Suguru promised that he'd come back once everything was done to escort Kuroi to safety.
The trek to the Star Corridor was long and quite.
There wasn't much Suguru could say to comfort you because there wasn't much he could reassure himself with. His worries for Satoru were overbearing in his mind and he couldn't try and fool himself into trying to bear the weight of your anxiety as well. Both of you knew this, so you didn't dare try to comfort one another.
There's nothing wrong. Everything's going to be okay. We're the strongest. Satoru will join us once this is over. Were the things Suguru soothed himself with.
"Is this...?" Riko uttered as they finally broke through to the outskirts of where Tengen homes themself.
"Yes," Suguru confirmed as he came to a stop beside the younger girl. "We're just outside of where Master Tengen resides. This is the country's base for primary barriers. The main hall of the tombs of the Star Corridor."
"Basically, it's their home." You said flatly, coming to Riko's other side, your eyes moving over the vast area. It was quiet, dark, and looked isolated. Nothing that brought any welcomeness for the eternity to come.
Suguru tried not to let his gaze linger on the woeful look painting your face now. He cleared his throat and pointed. "Go down the stairs and pass the gate. Then head toward the base of that huge tree. It's protected by a different barrier than the one around Jujutsu High. Only those invited may enter. You'll be protected by Master Tengen until the merger."
Riko's expression turned sorrowful as she followed the path Suguru paved with her eyes. This was the end. Her fun and the little life she lived was at its finish. She clenched her hands at her sides and made a move to continue forward, without them.
"Or we can turn back and go home to Kuroi."
Riko's eyes snapped to you. Your eyes were compassionate and a small smile graced your features that was more reassuring than any words that could be spoken. She looked a little pale, but the glow of hope suddenly appeared.
"What?" The girl uttered.
You turned to her fully, keep your expression soft. "When our taecher assigned us this mission, he used the word 'erase'. It's like, deep down, he knew something was wrong with this and, for a muscle guy, he doesn't usually beat around the bush." You looked like you wanted to chuckle at your own jab at Yaga, but didn't have the energy. Instead, you sighed. "I talked to Suguru and Satoru and we all came to the decision that if the kid who is the Star Plasma Vessel should refuse the merger then we call it off."
Riko's eyes widened even further and tears were on the cusp of falling as she stared at the both of you.
"We're the strongest," Suguru offered gently, offering a closed eyed smile to the girl. "No matter what you choose, we promise to protect your future."
Riko's lips quivered as her eyes bounced between you two and the vast nothingness of Tengen's home. She took in a shaky breath. "Ever since I was born, I've been told I'm special and different. Being special was normal for me. I've survived till now by staying away from danger... My parents died in a car crash. I don't remember it. I'm not say or lonely anymore." She started to fiddle with her hands as her words grew more unsteady. You moved to press against her side, hands rested against her shoulders. "That's why... with the merger, I thought I'd be okay... leaving everyone. No matter how painful it became, I believed that, some day, the sadness and loneliness would disappear."
"You just need the right person." You uttered to her, her eyes snapping up at you as tears silently streamed down her face. "You need that one person to prove that there's beautiful things out thereâ that there's kindness and love. I know. I understand, Riko."
The girl bursts into tears, a trail of snot ran from her nose as she shook with her cries. "I want to stay with everyone a bit longer!" Her voice seemed to echo around the two of you. "I want to go to more places and see more things with everyone! More!"
Both you and Suguru smiled softly. His hand reached out while you squeezed her shoulders. "Riko, let's go home." He beckoned her forward.
"Yeah!"
Suguru registered the shot last second, but it was too late for him to truly do anything.
He's never quite seen anything like it.
You were smiling, you looked free from your worries for one second.
Then you were falling. Your face slack and eyes blank. You fell against the ground with a deafening thud. Blood pooled around your head, chunks of your brain scattered across the ground. Your eyes.
They're so blank.
Suguru barely registered Riko's scream. His eyes couldn't leave you even as the girl screamed and screamed, hands clutching at her head as she stared at your body beside her.
You were just speaking a moment ago. You were smiling. How could this happen?
Your eyes are so blank.
"Y-Y/N...." Suguru uttered, eyes wide and face pale.
He felt sick. He didn't feel right. This wasn't right. Why were you on the ground? Why were you bleeding? Why can't he move? Why can't he breathe? Are you going to get up? Please get up.
Riko continued to scream. She just wouldn't stop. Her once hopeful eyes were now reduced to horror and terror as she smeared the blood covering the side of her face. None of it hers.
It's yours.
Your eyes are blank.
What are you doing? Get up. Get up. Smile. Just breathe. Get up. Please, I'll do anything. I'll listen to you ramble about those books you love so much. I'll buy you those disgusting snacks you crave. I'll do anything for you.
Please don't die.
Your eyes are blank.
"Oh," groaned a voice that rattled Suguru's soul. "I missed."
Suguru slowly turned his head to stare at the man. The one that had stabbed Satoru through the chest and had talked to him like an old friend. The one that was now standing, clutching a gun in his hand, pouting as if he was amused by his miscalculation.
As if your death was something he hadn't accounted for.
"How..." Suguru's voice doesn't feel like his own. It feels like he's out of body. As if something else is controlling him. He felt something warm on his cheek, but he couldn't reach for it. His limbs felt heavy, his hands cold. What was happening? Why did everything feel so muddled? "How'd you get here?"
Still, Riko screamed.
Still, your eyes were blank.
The man frowned. "How...?" Suddenly, he chuckled and pressed the side of the gun to his temple. "I see. I killed Gojo Satoru."
Suguru was swarmed with an unfamiliar feeling of rage. You and Satoru had once praised him for his ability to remain calm and level headed when things seemed to crumbled around all of you. He was the voice of reasonâ your moral compass. The map that lightened your way.
Suddenly, he felt like he was reduced to nothing but rage and this empty feeling in his chest.
Your eyes are blank.
Gojo Satoru is dead.
"I see..." Suguru growled, his eyes unmoved from the man across from him. "Then die!"
III. 2007
Suguru didn't feel right.
Although, he hadn't felt right for 11 months. 47 weeks, and five days. 8,016 hours. 480,960 minutes. 28,857,600 seconds.
He hadn't been right since the moment you dropped dead.
Your eyes were blank.
He wasn't enough to fight against Fushiguro Toji. The man had ruthlessly downed him then killed Riko. It was like it was nothing. He came, he killed, then he left.
Suguru had laid amongst the rubble of Toji's doing and stared into your blank eyes. He still wasn't sure how long it was. He couldn't move and he could barely breathe as the blood from his chest trickled to the stone and concrete under him. Your eyes stared lifelessly into his own. Endlessly. A never-ending staring contest that he pleaded to end.
The entire time he laid on the floor of Tengen's barrier. His mind only repeated one thing.
Please get up. Please be alive. Please get up. Please get up.
Your brains had scattered across the floor and your eyes were unmoving but he spent so much time just pleading with you to snap out of it. He thought he was enough. He apologized for not being enough.
Please get up. I promised to prove it to you.
There was a point he passed out. He could remember thinking, thankfully, that he was going to die. And he swore he heard your gurgled call for him.
Then, he woke up.
Shoko had looked distraught. He could still remember the way she eyed him wearily through red rimmed eyes. Cautious as she told him that you were dead. As she told him Satoru was gone.
Gone. But not dead.
Suguru had, very briefly, rejoiced in Satoru's survival.
Shoko said she cleaned your blood off his cheek.
Suguru hated her for a while after that.
He didn't stay at the infirmary for long. Despite Shoko telling him that Yaga wanted to see him and that he shouldn't move around yet, he dragged himself away. He dragged himself to the cult. He dragged himself along the side walk with his mind flashing with images of your blank eyes.
Was that all death was? Nothingness? Did it comfort you? Did it welcome you? Was it everything you imagined?
His mind wouldn't rest.
He could remember as he entered the building. As he heard the resounding and endless applause. He mindlessly entered and was meant with a never-ending crowd, parting as they just clapped, and clapped, and clapped. It rumbled through his ears, bouncing around his brain.
Your eyes were blank.
When the crowd parted, he remembered the clench of his heart as Satoru, bloodied and blank, appeared. He carried Riko's body in his arms. Lifelessly moving forward. His eyes stared right through Suguru.
"You're late," Satoru had teased blankly. His voice distant and flat. It missed its usual punch. "No.... I guess your're early."
Suguru remembered the confusion that washed over him as he stared at the one he loved. "Satoru... is that you...?"
What happened to you?
"It looks like you saw Shoko." Satoru had sounded like he wasn't entirely aware of his surroundings. Or he didn't care. "Is Y/N there right now?"
Suguru didn't have the heart then. He could remember silently apologizing to you, but he hadn't thought Satoru could handle the news of your death amongst this room.
"Shoko fixed me up fine." His eyes had moved to Riko's limp hand and he felt sick. Her screams were still in his mind. He almost threw up. "I'm sorry."
"I'm the one who messed up. Don't worry about it." Satoru had easily deflected.
Suguru couldn't handle the clapping. They just didn't stop. They clapped, and clapped, and clapped.
Your eyes were blank.
"Suguru," Satoru's voice had stopped him in his tracks. His voice was so detached and so odd. Suguru couldn't handle much change then. He couldn't handle hearing Satoru so different. Not then. "Do you want to kill them all?"
Suguru could remember the shock that shook his body. Could remember the bitterness that immediately followed. The realization that he would love nothing more than to unleash the worst on these people and sum their deaths up as their livesâ useless.
"Suguru," He had sworn he heard your voice, distorted and all too sweet. His back stiffened and his eyes widened. "Do you hate them, Suguru?"
He did. He hated them. He wanted them all to burn. He wanted them to suffer. Suguru would've loved nothing more than to have heard all of them plead for their lives. To have the same terror that Riko had when she realized her life was coming to an end. To have that same blank look in their eyes as you had.
Your eyes were blank.
"It's pointless." Suguru had shot down emotionless. He still wasn't sure if he was answering that tiny voice in his head or Satoru, maybe it was both. Who really cared?
"Pointless, huh?" Satoru walked past Suguru and started to make his way outside. "Does there need to be a reason?"
"Of course, it's important." Suguru had easily answered. "Especially as Jujutsu Sorcerers."
11 months. 47 weeks, and five days. 8,016 hours. 480,960 minutes. 28,857,600 seconds later, he believed that was all bullshit.
It surprised him how much and how little could change in a year.
The way everyone seemingly returned to normal and he was left in the past.
Suguru felt like his life was now segregated into two sections: Before the Star Plasma Vessel assignment and after the Star Plasma Vessel assignment. Before and after you.
He realized, quickly and bitterly, that the after you was worse than the before.
Before he knew of your existence, he was happy to be alone. He embraced the fact that kids at school thought him odd, unapproachable. That they would whisper about his habits behind his back. He was happy to know that no one wanted to be around him. It meant they didn't see what he saw. He didn't know anything else.
But the after you was considerably worse.
You had given him that breath of fresh air. That love that he had unknowingly reached out for his entire life. The way you and Satoru had touched him, he didn't even know his heart ached for that type of love. He didn't know he was depraved until you showed him.
He hated it. For a moment, he hated you.
In the first weeks after your death, he felt angry. He was bitter. Even as Satoru rubbed his back in bed. Even as he told Suguru it wasn't his fault. Even as everyone told him that you would hate to see him like that. He felt a hatred. A regret.
For months, he hated you.
He'd ignore topics centered around you. He ignored the day that Shoko and Satoru cleaned out your dorm for a new first year. He was stagnant and blank at the funeral your family held. When everyone walked up to recall memories about you, he didn't. He just listened and he thought that none of them truly captured you. They said you were kind, that you were funny, that you went our of your way to help whoever needed it.
If it was Suguru up there, he would've said you were selfish. That you always put your life on the line when it wasn't needed. That you were arrogant. That you could really make him worry.
But he loved you.
That's what he hated most. Isn't that the worst?
He hated that he loved the way he missed your hugs, your reassurances. He hated that he missed worrying about you. That he wouldn't ever see you again. That he wouldn't join you on a mission and be forced to listen to Yaga or fellow students worry about your sanity. He missed that sometimes you would play into Satoru's words, like saying the three of you were strongest together.
"Hey," Satoru called from across the training yard. Suguru barely looked up. "Have you lost some weight? Are you okay?"
Satoru became "The Strongest". His abilities were starting to blossom and it allowed him to work by himself. The higher-ups sent them alone. And Suguru hadn't felt more confined in his life.
"I'm just a little tired from the summer heat." Suguru easily explained it away, his hands buried deep within his pockets. "It's not a problem."
"Maybe you had too much somen noodles?" Satoru asked, niavely.
"No," Suguru wanted to snap at him. "It's the fact I can't eat without feeling sick. I can't taste anything except the fucking vomit of the curses. I hate it. I hate it. I'm always sick. I'm so hungry. But I can't eat."
Instead, he sighed. "Maybe."
The curse population was springing up like maggots. Everywhere and all consuming. The summer had been busy and Suguru truly was tired. In his heart, he started to blame the mess of last year for the increase of curses. It was easier to blame that than nothing. It was better to put a face to his suffering rather than blame himself.
The repetitiveness of his life was becoming crushing.
An endless cycle of exorcism and consumption.
Exorcise. Consume.
You had once asked him what curses tasted like. Under a beautiful tree and a beautiful night sky. You stared at him from your place on the ground. "Suguru, what does it taste like?"
"It's a taste nobody knows." He had explained. "Like ingesting a rag used to wipe up vomit."
Exorcise. Consume.
"Oh," You had uttered, a heavy frown on your lips as you pondered on it. "I'm sorry."
Exorcise. Consume.
He didn't need your pity then. But it had been nice. It felt nice for someone to pretend they understand the disgust, the bitter tang. He pretended that it helped.
"Thanks."
Then, you asked, "Would it help if you had mints?"
No. "Yes."
That first Christmas you all spent together, you got him mints. And, despite it doing nothing, he still popped one in his mouth every time. False hope that something could push down the disgust he had for his technique, for what he was considered special for. What lengths he went to save people.
For what?
Every since that day, the day you and Riko died, it's been running through Suguru's head. That everything he saw, Toji, your blood, your brains, the never-ending applause of the cult membersâ it was a hideous evil known to everyone. What he saw wasn't anything out of the ordinary. Still, knowing that, he protects them as a Jujutsu sorcerer.
"We can't lose our way." You had reassured one day when the curse you and him were fighting was particularly ruthless. It had killed so many people that the both of you hadn't been the same for weeks. "Don't lose your way. We just have to follow through with our duty as sorcerers."
The thunderous applause took over that of his heart.
"Monkeys." Suguru uttered in the shower. The first time he whispered it. His eyes unmoving from the wall as the water trickled down, down, and down.
Your eyes were blank.
"Do you hate them, Suguru?"
His hand clenched above him. "Fucking monkeys."
He snapped the water off and robotically dried himself off.
Suguru felt like he was merely living through the motions. That he was being guided other peoples words and the wind itself. He was merely a leaf being blown away. There wasn't anything he could do to stop it. Nothing he could do to ground himself and force himself to take the wheel. To be in control. He could only watch on.
He found himself hunched over on the bench near the vending machines. He barely acknowledged the rain that poured outside. It was one of those days. Those days where the weather matched his mood and made it considerably worse. Maybe he could get away with hiding inside his dorm. Being curled on the bed and not appearing until the rain was well goneâ when Satoru couldn't ask him if he's ate.
He closed his eyes in defeat. How could loneliness possibly feel worse now than it did then? He'd been alone for years before. Why was it worse now?
"Hi! Mister Geto!"
Suguru's eyes snapped open and dragged upwards. "Haibara..."
You liked Haibara. You said so on his first day. When he enthusiastically introduced himself to everyoneâ gave his blood type and his family history. You had laughed for twenty minuets. You said that Haibara was like a breath of fresh air. He had no idea what he was getting into and he was happy. Suguru said you were looking into it too much. You didn't agree. Then you invited both him and Nanami to join you all on a trip to Shinjuku.
You liked Haibara. He was sweet.
You liked Haibara. So did Suguru.
"Hope all is well!" Haibara continued, seemingly ignorant to the war raging on in Suguru's mind.
You liked Haibara. You trained him. He was sweet.
So did Suguru. "What can I get you to drink?" Suguru asked, pulling some change from his pockets.
"I couldn't possiblyâ" Haibara's eyes glanced at the vending machine then his eyes brightened. "I'll take a coke!"
Suguru couldn't help the little laugh that broke through his lips. Amusement in his eyes for the first time in a while as he gently dropped the change into the junior's cupped palm. Haibara pratically skipped over to the vending machine, dropping the coins in, and retrieved his coke.
Fully expecting him to carry on with a thanks, Suguru was a little surprised that he sat down beside him and smiled big.
"My mission tomorrow is pretty far away." The boy started, wiggling with excitement.
Suguru smiled softly. "That so? I'll be expecting a souvenir then."
"You got it! Something sweet or savory?"
"Satoru will probably have some too, so maybe something sweet."
This was the normal. It felt refreshing for everything to be so normal. A silent agreement amongst the second and third years to get everyone who asked a souvenir from their respective mission areas. It made for interesting foods or items. Silly things that he could place on his shelf or for him to take a bite and Satoru to steal the rest. Usually complaining about how no one ever gets him anything. Just like Okinawa when you picked that hatâ
Your eyes were empty.
Suguru's smile faded away.
"Haibara..." He spoke, not entirely aware if his junior was speaking before he was. But Haibara's eyes moved to him with curiosity. He bowed his head once again. "Are you okay with being a Jujutsu sorcerer? Doesn't it bother you?"
Immediately, the junior took the question seriously. His chin rested between his finger and thumb, eyes narrowed in thought. "Hm... good question..." He uttered, a vague pout on his lips. "I'm not really the type to think too hard about things..."
"I don't think we should underestimate Haibara or Nanami." You had defended the two new boys against Satoru's beratement one day. Your eyes cut to where they were practicing against Yaga's cursed dolls. "We all started somewhere. I'm sure they'll surprise us one day."
"Giving my all toward something I know I can help with is a great feeling!" Haibara finally answered, snapping his fingers and looking at Suguru head on.
Suguru couldn't help the way his eyes widened. For whatever reason, his answered shocked him. It was a pure answer. Further proof that Suguru was different from everyone else. Proved that he was slowly losing a part of himself. Haibara hadn't been graced with the same tragedy he had. He didn't know the cruelty of people and was still hopeful.
"I see..." Suguru uttered, looking away once again.
"You're right." Spoke another voice that neither of them know. Both of the boys looked over to the woman that stood a few feet from them. She was tall, long blonde hair and she wore a smile on her face. "Are you Geto? What kind of girls are you into?"
Your eyes were blank.
He only stared in return.
"I like girls with healthy appetites!" Haibara answered happily.
Suguru frowned. "Haibara."
"It's fine!" He turned to Surguru with a bright light in his eyes. "She's not a bad person. I'm a pretty good judge of character!"
Suguru felt something in his chest shift.
"Do you hate them, Suguru?"
"You say that while sitting next to me?" He uttered, sparing the junior a sidelong glance.
"Of course!" Haibara didn't hesitate.
The woman laughed, resting a hand on her hip. "He was being sarcastic, kid!"
No, I'm not. Suguru almost felt compelled to say. But he didn't have the energy. There wasn't any point in arguing with this stranger either. She didn't know him and he didn't know her. Something he would happily continue to stay true.
Embarrassed, Haibara excused himself with the woman quickly taking his spot. In an instant, Suguru drew back and crossed his arms over his chest.
"Is he your junior? Such an honest and cute kid."
Suguru couldn't help the distasteful glare he sent from the side. "As a jujutsu, he shouldn't be so trusting." He said bitterly.
The woman looked a little discouraged by his little jab, but continued on. "And you, Geto? Are you going to answer my question?"
"Answer mine firstâ who are you?"
The woman raised her chin, a small smirk on her lips. "Special grade sorcerer Yuki Tsukumo. Ring a bell?"
"You're the...?"
Yes. Yes, it did. Suguru thought bitterly.
He could distinctly recall you rambling on about Tsukumo. On how you wished you could be like her. Someone highly recognized and didn't care what the higher-ups saidâ just lived her life. To Suguru, it sounded like Tsukumo was kind of a failure. But to you, it was as if she was a symbol of something amazing. Proof that something that was suddenly attainable to you.
Suguru had been convinced you just had a crush on her.
"Nice! The what?"
Suguru clenched his jaw at her interruption of his thoughts. "The no-good special grade who doesn't take on any missions and just bums around overseas." He informed her flatly.
The woman's smile slipped away and she pouted heavily. "I hate Jujutsu High!" She fell back, her elbows rested on the back of the bench. She sulking. "Just kidding. But I'm not lying when I say we don't see eye-to-eye. What they do here is treat symptoms. What I want is to get at the root cause."
Suguru couldn't help perking up with interest. "The root cause?" He asked slowly.
"I don't want to exorcise curses after they appear. I want a world where curses don't even exist."
He stared at her in shock. A world without curses? He felt like he could almost rejoice. His heart gave a little skip and he almost felt like things were normal.
"How about a little lesson? Tell me, what are curses anyway?"
He leaned forward, elbows resting on his knees. "Curses are created when cursed energy leaks from humans. It then gathers like sediment and takes form." He answered easily. It was something taught in their first year, something everyone knows.
"Excellent," Tsukumo encouraged, nodding. "If that's the case, there are two ways to create a world where curses no longer exist: one, eradicate cursed energy from all humanity. Two, teach humans how to control their cursed energy. The first one's not a bad idea. There was a model case for it after all."
"A model case?"
"Someone you're familiar with: Zen'in Toji."
Almost instantly, Suguru felt an anger rush over him. Toji. That was someone else that he tried to avoid thinking about. Usually, it only led to thoughts darker than when he thought about you. He thought about the various things he would've done to Fushiguro if given the chance. The slow and torturous death he would've given to him if he had the chance. He doubted it would eat away the hatred in his heart, but Suguru would take anything to have him suffer as you did. As he did.
"There have been several cases where heavenly restriction has reduced a person's cursed energy to normal levels. But to eradicate one's cursed energy completely... I've searched all over the world, and he's the only one who's ever done it. But that's not the only thing that's interesting about him. Despite not having cursed energy, Zen'in Toji was able to sense curses using his five sense. By eliminating all cursed energy, his body became sharpened to the point where he developed a resistance to curses."
A part of Suguru really wanted to tell Tsukumo that he didn't care. That monster died and he was glad to hear it. Even if he was the only way to get rid of curses, he was overjoyed that the man was dead now.
"Don't feel bad about losing him." Suguru scoffed, face blank. "I wanted to research him but he blew me off. It's too bad he died."
You smiled at Riko. You held her shoulders. You were going to take her home.
Your eyes were blank.
I killed Gojo Satoru.
"Cases of heavenly restriction are few and far between. So my focus is on two." Tsukumo seemed completely unaware of Suguru's mind raging on while she spoke. She leaned forward, resting her elbows on her knees. "Did you know, jujutsu sorcerers don't give birth to curses?"
That snapped Suguru out of his thoughts. He slowly dragged his eyes to stare at the side of the woman's head as she carried on.
"Of course, that's excluding cases where sorcerers become curses after deathâ" Do you hate them, Suguru? "âThe amount of cursed energy that leaks from sorcerers, compared to from non-sorcerers, is extremely low. There is a difference in how much we consume and use cursed energy because of our profession. But the real reason lies in how it flows through us. For sorcerers, it flows heavily within us. If we're talking general termsâ if every single human became a jujutsu sorcerer, no curse would ever be born again."
Suguru's world as he knew it, paused.
The thunderous applause returned. The cheers as Satoru carried Riko's body through the crowd.
The deafening thud of your body as you fell lifelessly to the ground. Riko's scream as your blood painted half of her face. The way his heart echoed against his head as he stared.
You eyes were blank.
Those people. Humans. Non-sorcerers. They created the world that killed you. They created a world where he was alone.
Do you hate them, Suguru?
"Then why not just kill every non-sorcerer?" He asked softly, not daring to lift his head or eyes from between his feet.
There was a silence between the two of them that made him tense up. He said something wrong. But why didn't it feel wrong? Why didn't the suggestion disgust him or make him sweat? Why did it feel like an idea that was meant to be said?
"Geto," Tsukumo finally spoke, voice slow and calculated. "That is an option."
What?
"In fact, that might be the easiest route!"
Suguru slowly lifted his eyes from the floor and stared at the woman next to him with wide eyes. Now, he felt it. He felt the sweat on his brow. It's an option. "What?" He uttered, tilting his head to try and meet her eye as she stared into the distance. "Um..."
"Weed out non-sorcerers and make them adapt to a jujutsu sorcerer based society. In other words, forced evolution. Kinda like how birds grew wings. Using dear and danger as a catalyst."
It's an option. Suguru couldn't shake his stare. He was holding his breath and just staring at her.
"But," There it is. "I aint' that crazy."
She looked amused, but she didn't know him. She didn't know his feelings and the fact that he hatedâ
"Do you hate non-sorcerers, Geto?" She asked it sincerely.
Do you hate them, Suguru?
His eyes went back the floor, ashamed. "I don't know." He started with a whisper. "I used to think jujutsu sorcerers existed to protect non-sorcerers. But recently, I've been doubting whether non-sorcerers are worth fighting for. The preciousness of the weak. The ugliness of the weak. I can no longer tell the difference. The part of me that looks down on non-sorcerers.... the part of me that tries to resist that feeling...."
The thunderous applause returned. The cheers as Satoru carried Riko's body through the crowd.
The deafening thud of your body as you fell lifelessly to the ground. Riko's scream as your blood painted half of her face. The way his heart echoed against his head as he stared.
You eyes were blank.
"If being a jujutsu sorcerer is like running a marathon, then the finish line is too unclear." Suguru placed a hand against his forehead, hairs tangled between his fingers. "I don't know what I really feel."
"It's understandable, you know?" Suguru glanced at her with a frown as she eyed him contemplatively. "You watched your friend die, right? It's never easy. Messes you up. I'm sure I don't have to tell you."
You don't.
"Death and mourning something can really conjuring some nasty things in your mind. Like killing non-sorcerersâ you want to take that anger out on someone. The anger for your friend's life being taken away." She explained it like it was so easy, as if she knew his next steps when he did not. "But looking down on non-sorcerers... resisting that feeling... those are just possibilities you've thought of. Whatever your true feeling is, you still have to decide."
The conversation didn't lead to anywhere else and Suguru was feeling himself grow more tired the more he stayed away from his dorm. He was about to excuse himself when Tsukumo asked for him to follow her out. She didn't say much on the way out and Suguru was grateful for it.
The woman got on her bike and waved at him. "I'll see ya! I was hoping to say hi to Gojo as well. Bad timing, I guess." She slid her goggles on. "As fellow special grade sorcerers, let's all three of us get along, okay?"
Suguru gave her his best smile, which wasn't much. "I'll send you regards to Gojo."
Tsukumo smiled, starting up her bike. She was about to ride off when she looked back at him. "One last thing. Don't worry about what happened with the Star Plasma Vessel. Whether there was another vessel or another vessel was bornâ whatever happened, Tengen is stabilized."
He didn't think it possible, but his hatred grew. Tengen is stabilized.
The thunderous applause returned. The cheers as Satoru carried Riko's body through the crowd.
The deafening thud of your body as you fell lifelessly to the ground. Riko's scream as your blood painted half of her face. The way his heart echoed against his head as he stared.
You eyes were blank.
Tengen is stabilized.
Suguru bowed his head as she drove off. "I figured."
What the fuck had you died for, anyway?
Haibara was dead and he'd seen the body. The entire time Suguru thought of you.
As Nanami attempted to hold back tears, as he explained that they were caught off guard by a special grade, Suguru saw you in Haibara's place.
Both of you victims of a system created to protect people who weren't grateful. Who didn't even know you exist. People who had spared both of you not a single glance despite being so caring, so selfless. Who were they to put this unbearable burden on everyone's shoulders then act like you were different?
Haibara was sweet. You liked him. So did Suguru.
Haibara was dead. So were you. Suguru felt hatred build in him.
As he stared at Haibara's bloodied face, he had thought one thing: who would suffer for this death?
Gojo completed the mission. Gojo exorcised the curse. Gojo. Gojo. Gojo. Gojo.
Gojo.
Why should Gojo be the one wrecking havoc? When it was Suguru that was filled with rage? When he was the one that wanted nothing more than to harm the ones that caused this all?
Do you hate them, Suguru?
"What is this?" Suguru asked slowly, staring at the sight before him.
Two girls seemingly coward away from him. Their faces bloodied and bruised. The cage that contained them offered no comfort. Just the cold hard ground and the darkness. They shook under his gaze and he couldn't find it in himself to look away. He couldn't turn around and question the people behind him. He did not know what he'd do if he looked them in the eyes as they explained themselves.
"What do you mean? These two are responsible for the incident, right?" Asked one man.
Suguru clenched his jaw. "No, they are not."
"These two possess strange powers and often attack the villagers."
This was of your own creation.
"I already dealt with the cause for the incident."
"My grandchild nearly died because of these two!" Protested the elderly woman as if she realized that Suguru wasn't going to believe these two were responsible.
The blonde child leaned forward. "That was because theyâ"
"Shut up you monsters!"
"Your parents were the same! I knew we should've killed you when you were born!"
As the two adults berated the children, Suguru came to a decision. His heart was no longer torn in two. As he stared at the girl's, his resolution was made.
He lifted his finger and a shadowed curse sprouted. "It-It'll be okay..." The girls stared at him with wide eyes, almost relieved. If he were a different man. If he in a different mindset then, he would've cried over the relief that washed over them. "Do...Don't worry... it'll be o-okay."
He ignored how familiar the voice was, how familiar the words were. He'd grown used to finding something that wasn't there in the curses he had collected. The fact that the ones he barely manifested were the ones that sounded like you the most.
Suguru turned around to the villagers and smiled. One that he hadn't managed to conjure up in some time.
"Let's step outside for a moment, shall we?"
The two followed him out and Suguru wasn't sure what words he said, what movement he made, but he could see the horror in their eyes. As he manifested his beloved curses, the one people like them had created, he felt an anger bubble up. Emotions that he had desperately pushed aside in an attempt to continue his life were now running their way to the forefront of his mind.
The grief of losing you. The anger of the complete disregard of you life by the society as a whole. The fact that there was nothing left of you now. Nothingâ
"Suguru, do you hate them?"
His body stiffened. His wide eyes dragged from the horrified, begging people before him, to over his shoulder. The shadow that loomed over him now.
He'd read about this before. It was some obscure book he found while researching previous curse manipulators. It talked about various things that he used to prove to Yaga that he was learning something. One section had piqued his interest, but it was never information that he'd use in random day-to-day. Vengeful spirits. Usually, this only happened after sorcerers die without jujutsu being used against them. Their very soul and spirit is corrupted and transformed into something horrible. Something darker than who they truly were in life.
As Suguru stared at the spirit before him now, he knew what he had inadvertently done to you. The way your large body curled around him, wisps of what should be hair floating above you, your body clad in an open and flowing kimono. What caught his eyes the most, were your own eyes. Despite being almost invisible, he was relived. They were not blank. Instead, they looked like they burned with the rage he had held back for years.
It was as if you were the extension of his very soul.
"It should be noted that if you find yourself attached to a vengeful spirit: You must establish a clear master/servant bond. As the spirit is attached to your own soul, they musn't be allowed to overcome you. If exorcism is not an option, then create a clear set of rules. Summon them only when necessary. Vengeful spirits are not to be taken lightly."
"Suguru, do you hate them?" Your eyes did not leave his.
This time, he didn't hesitate nor lie. "Yes."
He heard them whimper in fear.
You moved unnaturally, but he didn't care. "Do you want them to die, Suguru?"
His eyes narrowed. "Yes."
Your hand rested on his shoulder and he didnt even care if your talon like nails dug into his flesh. He watched, awestruck, as you turned your feral gaze onto the cowering villagers. "Can I hurt them for you, Suguru?"
Despite your state, despite what it meant for him, he couldn't help but feel the warmth blossom through his chest. He basked in the feeling of your brushed against his shoulder.
"Yes."
An unnatural smile creeped over your face and your shot forward, now clutching your katana.
All Suguru could think was: you're back.
"Suguru....what have you done?"
Geto adjusted his gojogesa with a emotionless mask over his face. The bags that had adorned his eyes for the past year were mostly gone. He was finally able to eat. His mind wasn't constantly ringing with that thunderous applause or the thud of your body. Instead, he was free. There was silence.
Except whenever you spoke.
"Where did you get that energy? Suguru, answer me!"
He had seen Gojo a week ago. He had said his goodbyes, vaguely masked as threat. Geto knew what they were now. Enemies by default. He knew it couldn't be long before the higher-ups found out about the villageâ known exactly what he'd become that night. He was a curse user.
God, was that a great feeling.
Geto was giddy that night. He couldn't help the giddiness he felt with his freedom. The happiness he felt as he held Nanako and Mimiko in his arms, trekking through the woods to the main street where he dragged them to his parent's house. That whole situation had been something in itself. Their anger, their confusion, the heartbreak for not understanding their son anymore.
Geto had simply taken what he needed for the twins, then left you to take care of his parents.
"You feel it, don't you, Gojo? You see them."
There was an assortment of things that Geto found himself doing after he defected. He suddenly found himself in the place of taking care of two twin girls that clung to his clothes and followed his every word like he was the Buddha guiding them towards enlightenment. There big eyes screamed the thank you's that he did not need or would accept. Still, he could tell that they were trying to prove that they were useful to him. Whatever that meant coming from a pair of 6 year olds.
The second thing he'd started was taking over the Star Plasma Religious Group. Although he heard they had disbanded a year prior, it appeared that they were just absorbed by another money hungry fool scamming them for every last cent they had. Not that he was about to go bad mouthing other people's methods for something he was about to do himself. It was surprisingly easy to take over a religious group when you had a vengeful spirit hanging off of you. The men, although easy to get on his side, he still killed. There was no point to their existence now. Not when he had his own plans outside from worshipping the likes of Tengen.
The last thing he was taking care of was you.
"....What did you do?"
"Nothing. I did nothing. They're was always with me."
Geto's adventure back into the books covering vengeful spirits was actually welcomed this time around. As a younger student, he hadn't really cared to think about what would happen to him if he happened to die in a terribly normal way. But now it was something he regarded with the utmost fascination. The different descriptions of vengeful spirits made him ponder exactly what you were.
Violent and seeking revenge. Sad and lost. Unaware they're dead and seeking guidance. Plague that spreads death, leeching off certain hosts. Clingy, they seek approval from the attached for their actions. These spirits had a connection with the host in their life and feel something unfinished in their death.
He could remember the look in Gojo's eyes as his eyes strained to look over Geto's shoulder. The fear and the realization that washed over him. The anger in his eyes as he seemed to grieve over not only Suguru, but you as well. The waver in his voice as he asked Geto what he had done. It almost made Geto feel bad.
Almost.
Gojo had his life laid out for himself. The higher-ups knew what they could do with him. He was practically bred and born for his role amongst everything. He'd live and die the jujutsu society. Something that always unsettled Suguru, but something Geto accepted. He came second. Last compared to jujutsu.
At least he had you. It was you and him first. Then Gojo. He could make this work again. He wouldn't let anything happen to you again.
Geto shifted his attention elsewhere as he flattened his robes.
God, he really did look the part now, didn't he? Except, maybe, the hair. But he wasn't doing anything about it.
"This place is still a religious group to the public, are you okay with that?" Asked one of the nameless faces that Geto would encounter in his life.
He over looked the stage before him with a flat expression. "As long as I can collect curses and money, that's all right." He reassured.
The man frowned, looking at Geto with some vague confusion. "Are you really going out there like that?"
He let a grin spread across his lips. "Why not? Bluffing and looking the part is important."
"Master Geto..."
He spared the twins a soft glance, a reassuring smile gracing his features. He reached down and ruffled their hair gently. "Be sure to watch closely." He whispered to them, watching with a warmth in his heart as they smiled and giggled at one another. "Have they gathered?"
"Directors, representatives. The chairman. And a lot more money waiting."
Geto grinned, taking the microphone from the man, and making his way out onto the stage.
The last time he'd been in the building they were giving a thunderous applause for Riko's death and, by extension, yours. He had been waiting a year to see them all again. To look them in the eyes and find a proper way to make them suffer. To make them feel the same fear or suffering that you and Riko had in your last moments.
"Can everyone hear me? Thank you for waiting, I'll keep this short." He announced as he came to a stop before them all. Nameless faces, judgmental side eyes, questionable whispers to one another. They did not remember Suguru. But he would make sure they remembered Geto. "As of this moment, this group is mine. We'll have a new name as well. You all will obey me."
Instantly, there was a scattered rise of opposition in the crowd.
Geto's grin faltered as he listened to the various questions of exactly who was he made their way to him. He could hear the anger and the confusion. His frustration heightened.
"Well, isn't that a shame." He dragged a hand over his face, eyes grazing the crowd before he grinned one more. He tried to look as inviting as he could, waving a hand at one man in particular. "Mister Sonoda! Could you please come up to the stage? Yes, that's right, you!"
As the older man stood from his seat and hobbled his way up, Geto narrowed his eyes. Despite his smile, his eyes couldn't hide the contempt and the hatred he had for the man before him. He could see that he noticed in the way he faltered on the steps. But pushed through and stood by Geto's eyes.
He made eye contact with Sonoda, thenâ "Y/N."
He found it easy to summon you. To watch you tear away at the man who had so brazenly ordered Riko's death. To listen to the garbled expressions of hatred you exclaimed as you tore his enemies limb-by-limb. It felt like it was some form a justice. To finally see the horror in their eyes, the blankness of it all. Bittersweet for him to watch.
However, he couldn't stand there and watch you in awe forever. He had people to take under his control.
Geto turned his attention back to the crowd. Satisfaction grew in his chest as he saw the horror and shock fall over their faces. Easily, Geto threw the microphone away.
"Now then, let's try this again." He scowled at the crowd, feeling you loom over his shoulder once again. He used his thumb to brush away some of the blood. "Obey me, monkeys."
III. 2015
"Are you mad at me, Suguru?"
Things had been going smoothly for Geto in the past eight years.
The cult, because that's what he considered it, was running finely. Those who owed money, gave it to him, or else. Those who followed, followed with loyalty, or else. Those who served no purpose, were dealt with. He had created a normal amongst the congregation. A standard that he himself had wanted to watch them scramble to keep. A constant state of panic or devotion for them that fed into his, honestly, growing ego.
Things like his family kept him rather humble.
The girls had grown accustomed to their lives with Geto. They seemed to thrive and love under his care. All of them had grown to a routine that they cherished with one another. They even seemed accustomed to you. The fear and confusion of others wasn't found in their eyes or hearts. Geto never properly explained what happened after death if certain things didn't take place, but they understood anyone. They knew you were important to himâ by extension making you important to them.
The other members of the familyâ Laure, Miguel, Manami, Toshihisaâ had a vague understanding of exactly what a vengeful spirit entailed. Although, they weren't jumping at the opportunity to really talk about it. Laure had attempted once, but the conversation died out quickly due to the look on Geto's face. The man was quick to drop the topic once he saw the expression painting the leader's face. Allegedly, he looked ready to kill.
Earlier that day, though, Miguel was braver. And Geto was in a far clearer mood.
"How did it happen?" The man's deep voice asked gently from where he sat across from Geto. Once the confusion set in of his sudden question, he raised an eyebrow at the apparent shadow rested behind his chair. "How did they get cursed?"
Geto himself had thought about it for years. He wondered what point you had been damned blessed to be attached to his soul even after death. It took him a long time. In the mix of things, death and decay, the sharp turn of his idealsâ he had barely any time to really think about what made you this spirit clinging onto his life.
Some books said that it could be the connection shared by the host and spirit before death. Others said that hosts had the ability to curse the spirit themselves. That their desperation and their inability to let go was the true reason that sorcerers would live on as something horrible. Something completely opposite as to who they were in life.
He had pushed the thoughts away before they could ever really come to fruition. The possibility that he had been the one to create you into this. The thought alone was enough to twist his stomach. So instead he ignored it. He lived in blissful ignorance.
"Just happens sometimes after death." Geto answered flatly, turning his attention back to his book. He knew there was curiosity amongst his family to know things about you. Afterall, you were considered a part of the family, but there was simply no room to have conversation with you. You either grew hostile or confused and sought Geto out for answers. "Sorcerers whenever they're killed by a non-curse way or something another.
"Hm," Miguel's hum had remained unconvinced as his eyes trailed back to you. As your fingers hovered over the corner of the seat, but you didn't peek out. "There was a couple in my village back home. They were considered the ideal relationship at the timeâ I was a kid and thought so too. They were kind people. I always enjoyed getting special treatment from the wife, she was like a mother. She was one of the only other people I ever met in my home country that could see curses. Everything was good. But then her husband went and died from sickness. There was something different from the moment she died. She went a little crazy and one day she went and got real angry. Thenâ boom, there's her husband. But he was different. He was like yours."
Geto hadn't really known what to make of that rather non-sensical story at the time. He had just stared at Miguel before nodding slowly in return. "That's tragic." He wasn't interested in the possibilities.
"Nanako told me it was hard on you when they died." Miguel carried on as if he hadn't very visibly paused for Geto to speak his heart out. "Said that you said it was the reason you're the way you are now."
There was moments where Geto felt frustration with the twins. Their willingness to be so open with the family. Their ability to talk about their emotions so easily. The fact that they couldn't keep a secret for their lives.
The conversation about you had come up when the house was particularly restless and they were morbidly curious. They asked what you were like alive. What he was like as a kid. What the both of you were like in high school. How did you die.
He had looked off distantly and recalled the detailsâ although he left out the gorey, unlikeable parts. He left in the parts where he was sad, that he had a hard time. He explained it in a way that kids like them could understand and use later to make sure they didn't end up the same way. Isolated and full of hatred.
Then, he made the mistake of mentioning Gojo. Their questions fell on deaf ears as he wished them goodnight and tried to drown out the memories of his youth.
"Don't get on her case about it. She's was just curious what certain things meant." Miguel must've taken his silence as anger because he stared at Geto with pleasantly narrowed eyes. "Have you ever considered exactly what happened to them?"
The question wasn't hostile or had any nefarious undertones.
He might as well had threatened Geto though.
Your eyes were blank.
"Please get up."
Geto had quickly excused himself, claiming that he needed to head to bed. He didn't miss the disappointment in Miguel's eyes or the fact that he had tensed up as you drew closer. He didn't want to think about it. What had taken place before, during, and after your death. He didn't need the questionsâ
"Please get up."
Tonight he couldn't escape it.
Eight years worth of questions and mystery filled his mind. The things he didn't dare address or ponder upon.
Sitting against his headboard, staring blankly into the darkness, he knew exactly how things ended up like this.
Him, a pathetic boy, staring into your lifeless eyesâ he had begged for you to be alive. He had laid there with tears in his eyes, a pain in his chest, and a wavering plead breaking from his lips. Before he had fallen unconscious, he reached out his hand.
He reached out his hand.
Your eyes were blank.
Geto knew that he had cursed you. That his pleads and desperately attempt at touching you one last time had somehow damned you. He didn't need to know how it worked. He just knew that it was his fault.
The disgust in Gojo's eyes, the heartbreak, the shock. It was all things Geto deserved. For he had robbed you of the eternal rest you deserved.
The tears collected in his eyes and, for the first time in eight years, he felt a heavy bought of regret press against his chest.
He's known you longer dead than you were alive. Two years of his life had ruled onto the next eight. He had let his grief blind him. He was desperate to not let you go. To keep up some illusion in his head that he would be able to keep you there. To not let you fade away.
Selfish. He'd never been selfish before your death.
"Suguru?"
Your voice, distorted and garbled, was not something that he wanted to hear in that moment. Whatever reason, you were beside the bed now, head rested against your arms. He barely spared you a glance as the tears spilled over.
Selfish. Here you were now. Some weird sense in you to come out and comfort him. He had done this to you. An eternity to comfort him.
Selfish.
"Suguru, are you angry?" You sounded concerned, an odd sound that it didn't seem to fit you now.
Geto clenched his jaw, flexing his fingers. "Only at myself." He uttered.
You inched forward on the bed, a heavy frown spread across your face. "Why are you angry at yourself?"
He finally dragged his eyes to you, lids heavy and face almost as lifeless as your own. "I cursed you." He said it quietly but it felt extremely loud in his empty room. He looked for any realization in your eyes, any type of anger directed at him, but there was nothing. You just stared in return. You should be enraged. "I cursed you. Don't you understand what that means?"
Still, you didn't look angry.
"You saved meâ"
"No, no, I didn't." Geto interrupted, closing his eyes in mild irritation. "I didn't... save you. I cursed you. I-I cursed you to stay by my side as I kill. As I kill in your name, you should be angry, Y/N."
âBut⌠theyâve hurt you.â You say it with such confusion and sincerity that it makes him sick.
Itâs then that he realizes what this all meant.
If you were alive now, you would look at him with all the rage in the world. You would damn him. You would be disgusted. If you were alive you would probably try to get him to see it all differently. You would tell him that staying with Gojo wouldâve been better than this isolation, than this constant feeling in his chest. You wouldâve known better than him.
It was then that he realized that he still blamed you for a lot. He wasnât sure if things would be the same if just Riko died. Or maybe if you all had lived. Would he still be drawn to the same fate only later? Sometimes he was hopeful that he would be the same. Other times he wished he didnât. All of it led to one thing: his anger for you.
There were some nights he would stay up and think about what you would do in his position. You would forgive them, try to use death as a chance to grow. You were much kinder than him. Or maybe you would be driven insane. None of you had quite tasted death until that mission. You probably wouldâve handled things much differently than him if you had seen where Haibara ended up.
Bitterly, Geto thought, you probably wouldâve given up.
Your sadness was always prone to taking you down. To whisper those forbidden and nasty things to you until you just wanted to bleed. You admitted to him and Gojo once that you didnât even think you would make it to high school once. It scared them both, but you always got back up.
Yeah, you wouldnât handle the sadness.
With a clenched jaw, Geto reached out and held your face. âI made you into this. You only kill and feel that way because thatâs how I feel. Doesnât that make you angry? Donât you hate me?â He so desperately wanted you to see it from his point of view. He wanted the logic of it all to hit your brain and for you to finally finish what Toji and Gojo couldnâtâ properly kill him.
However, just as you were in life, you would never take his life.
âI donât care about those things.â You uttered in that distorted voice, those eyes of yours filled with emotions that he couldnât hand pick. âHave I done something to upset you, Suguru?â
"No." Geto answered without hesitation. He pinched his eyes closed and took a deep breath. "I just want you to understand what this is."
He could feel your nail ghost over his thigh. "I understand."
Geto didn't believe you did, but he didn't have the energy to fight you. Not anymore. A part of him would always long to have a good long argument with you. But now it felt different. It felt as if it were all fabricated.
You were too agreeable now.
Please don't die. Please don't leave me.
But he supposed this was his punishment now. For being so desperate.
He rested his hand on top of your head. "Thanks for listening, I guess."
He can deal with the guilt later.
IV. 2017
Geto Suguru knew this would happen.
At least, a part of him was aware that death with a very high likely once he looked Gojo Satoru in the eye and declared war. Maybe even before that as he overlooked the mess of blood and limbs Rika had left behind at the elementary.
Either way, Geto Suguru knew this would happen.
"Hey," You had spoke one day as the three of them lounge in the courtyard. You had your uniform jacket open and your hair loose from the headband you wore to keep it out of your face. A good memory if it weren't for your next question. "Is it good to live a dishonorable life and have a honorable death, or a honorable life with a dishonorable death?"
"Huh? Why would you ask that now?" Satoru had pouted.
You had shrugged. "I mean, Yaga-sensei says that to be a sorcerer we'll have to live with our regrets, but he never talks about honor."
Satoru, in true fashion, rolled his eyes at you before taking a large bite out of his sandwich. "Because it's a bunch of self righteous mumbo-jumbo." He had said through a mouth full.
"Whatever." Your eyes dragged to Suguru. Your face had blossomed into a soft smile. "What do you think, Suguru?"
Suguru had frowned, biting on his lower lip as he thought. "I think what we all consider honorable varies. At the end of the day, you'll have to look back on your life yourself and decide whether you lived it worth wild." As you and Satoru stared at him with raised eyebrows, he shyly shrugged. "Don't worry about how honorable or dishonorable you'll be to othersâ just live a life that'll make you happy."
While you stared at him with someone akin to awe, Satoru stared blankly at him before bowing. "Truly inspirational, Suguru-sama, please invoke more of your wisdom on us!"
You had defended Suguru fervently as Satoru crowed against your assault. Then, he had been unwavering in his beliefs.
Now, Geto Suguru, stumbling down the ally with a missing arm, knew that all was bullshit.
There was nothing honorable or dishonorable about death. It was all a matter how people viewed you at the time. No one would be truly satisfied with their death because there would be a long list of things they wished they had done or hadn't done in their life.
As Yaga had said, they would all die with regrets.
His plans to obtain Rika had been rooted from a place of pure selfishness. His need to find alternative needs that didn't include using you in the most indescribable and unforgiveable way. He knew, deep down, that if he had used you the way that he planed to use Rika's powersâ he would never forgive himself.
He hadn't even wanted to use you against Okkotsu Yuta. But that kid was something else. Most definitely a protege of Gojo Satoru. He could recall the caught off guard look on Okkotsu's face once you appeared. The confusion and the shock that overtook him as you wrapped yourself around Geto Suguru. He had uttered something that made the man falter.
"You're like me?"
There were so many things something that could mean.
You're like me: you're cursed with a love by your side, permanently protecting you against things that you didn't think were dangerous.
You're like me: someone had died so close to you that couldn't quite detach themselves from your soul.
You're like me: you cursed another because you couldn't accept that death was final?
Yes, Geto Suguru bitterly thought as his drive to kill Okkotsu grew. I did.
Now, Geto Suguru couldn't even feel you brewing with his soul. He didn't even think there'd be a difference if you ever left him. But there was this odd sense of loneliness deep within him that made him sick (definitely had nothing to do with the intense blood loss). His stomach churned as his mind silently cried out for you.
Was this true death? Nothing left to hold onto, just the memories and emptiness?
You're like me: you can't live without them.
Geto Suguru fell against the wall of the alley with a bitter scoff. Of course he couldn't. No matter how much he tried to convince himself, he spent the last 10 years attach his very life and soul around you. Tried to act like a big boy whenever he was asked what he would do if he was freed from this curse.
He didn't even get to say goodbye.
Your eyes were blank.
"You finally made it," Geto Suguru snorted as he shifted his eyes over to the looming figure feet from him. "Satoru."
There was something so jarring seeing him now.
Compared to when he arrived a month prior, Gojo Satoru lacked those bandages around his eyes. Those blinding and once comforting pair of sky blues were staring into his very soul blankly. Did he realize that he wasn't coming to say goodbye to you? To free you from a monster like Geto Suguru? That he had actually used you in a last ditch effort to obtain Rika?
He was sure he was aware now.
"You'll be the one to take me down, huh?" He kept a hold on his shoulder as he dragged his eyes away from Gojo Satoru to avoid the unbearable guilt that overcame him. Years of regret and what if's overtaking his mind. "How's my family?"
As long as Nanako and Mimiko were safe, he could die without regret.
"They all got away. Kyoto was your doing too, wasn't it?" Gojo Satoru's voice was as telling as it was 10 years ago. As saddened and angered as the day he had walked away from it all.
"Yeah, unlike you, I'm a kind person. You sent those two here knowing I'd defeat them.... just so you could trigger Okkotsu's growth." He had been thinking about it since the moment Okkotsu's eyes had darkened. The unbearable grief that took over the boy as he eyed his unmoving and bloody friends.
Your eyes were blank.
"It's called trust. People with beliefs like yours wouldn't kill a young sorcerer without reason."
Geto Suguru laughed. "Trust, huh?" He couldn't help the amusement flow through him. After all these years... "I didn't realize you still felt any connection with me."
His counterpart responded with a scoff. "Suguru." It was said with the weight of a thousand lonely daysâ as if Satoru had thought the same. As if nothing had changed. The man clenched his jaw, ducking his eyes from view as he spoke once again: "Any last words?"
Geto Suguru drew in a heavy breath, things were really getting hazy nowâ almost feather light. "No matter what, I'll always hate those monkeys." His words were said with the disdain and hatred of the past ten years. Then he thought about where he was 10 years ago. The grief and the isolation that overtook him. He grew quiet. "But it's not like I hate everyone at Jujutsu High. It's just that in this world... I couldn't wear a heartfelt smile."
Satoru stood there in silence. Seeming to take in the words carefully.
"Anything else?" He uttered.
Suguru frowned, ducking his head. There was one thing he had been thinking about for the past two years that grappled him in the most unnerving ways. "Do you think they'll forgive me?" His question was soft and barely thereâ he was barely there himself anyway.
Satoru scoffed, except it sounded more fond than before. "They were always too forgiving of us. If you're worried about your purgatory being apologizing to them for eternity, then you're fineâ it'd be too easy anyway." He joked softly, except his blank expression didn't quite add to the comfort or joke of it all.
I'd spend the rest of time apologizing. Suguru fought the urge to say.
"I figured."
"Suguru," Satoru took attentive steps forward, crouching down to his level. Their eyes met and there was something almost tangiable in that gaze of his. "I love you. I forgive you."
Suguru couldn't help the shock that flushed over his body. As the pain seemed to leave him completely, he used the last bits of his strength to show Satoru a true smile. The only one he could really conjure.
"You could at least curse me at the end."
As Satoru stared at him, as Yuta Okkotsu celebrated with his friends the victory and their safety, and as Suguru took his last breaths, his eyes trailed over Satoru's shoulder.
You stared back with a kind smile. Looking more alive than you had in the past ten years, you wore the clothes you had the day you died, your normal boring uniform. Suguru hated to admit he missed seeing those terrible uniforms.
"Suguru."
#âŠŕż t writes#⥠oneshot#jjk fic#jjk#jjk x reader#geto suguru x reader#geto suguru angst#jujutsu kaisen x reader#suguru geto x reader#suguru geto#geto suguru#gojo satoru x reader#jjk spoilers#geto suguru x curse!reader
1K notes
¡
View notes